Selected quad for the lemma: law_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
law_n king_n know_v power_n 6,767 5 5.0443 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A34401 Memorabilia, or, The most remarkable passages and counsels collected out of the several declarations and speeches that have been made by the King, His L. chancellors and keepers, and the speakers of the honourable House of Commons in Parliament since His Majesty's happy restauration, Anno 1660 till the end of the last Parliament 1680 ... by Edward Cooke ... Charles II, King of England, 1630-1685.; Cooke, Edward, of the Middle Temple.; England and Wales. Sovereign (1660-1685 : Charles II); England and Wales. Parliament. House of Commons. 1681 (1681) Wing C5998; ESTC R6281 150,017 116

There are 26 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

law_n in_o full_a force_n and_o power_n and_o have_v not_o law_n 32._o our_o safety_n most_o consist_v in_o be_v govern_v by_o law_n justice_n be_v equal_o and_o impartial_o administer_v to_o all_o ever_o since_o the_o happy_a restoration_n of_o the_o king_n let_v there_o be_v then_o no_o complain_v in_o our_o street_n no_o murmur_n satisfaction_n 33._o and_o if_o our_o civil_a right_n can_v be_v yet_o make_v more_o firm_a to_o we_o the_o king_n heart_n be_v full_a of_o gracious_a intention_n for_o our_o general_a satisfaction_n in_o our_o border_n if_o we_o have_v not_o law_n enough_o to_o secure_v and_o please_v we_o if_o we_o think_v our_o liberty_n and_o civil_a right_n can_v be_v yet_o more_o firm_o establish_v to_o we_o then_o let_v we_o lay_v down_o our_o just_a necessity_n before_o he_o who_o say_v god_n know_v our_o heart_n be_v full_a of_o gracious_a intention_n 13._o the_o king_n declaration_n to_o all_o his_o love_a subject_n dec._n 26._o 1662._o pag._n 13._o not_o only_o for_o the_o plenty_n and_o prosperity_n but_o for_o the_o universal_a satisfaction_n of_o the_o nation_n and_o no_o doubt_n but_o he_o will_v concur_v with_o we_o in_o all_o thing_n which_o may_v advance_v our_o peace_n and_o preserve_v our_o just_a right_n to_o we_o this_o we_o may_v steadfast_o believe_v when_o he_o assure_v his_o parliament_n receive_v 34._o for_o nothing_o can_v be_v reasonable_o propose_v but_o he_o will_v ready_o receive_v that_o if_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n you_o think_v want_v to_o secure_a property_n there_o be_v nothing_o 4._o the_o king_n speech_n jan._n 7._o 1671_o 4._o pag._n 4._o which_o you_o shall_v reasonable_o propose_v but_o i_o shall_v be_v ready_a to_o receive_v it_o therefore_o be_v but_o please_v yourselves_o please_v 35._o therefore_o be_v please_v ourselves_o he_o be_v best_a please_v and_o persuade_v other_o to_o be_v so_o contrive_v all_o the_o way_n 23._o ●●e_z lord_n chancellor_n speech_n ●eptemb_v 13._o ●●60_n pag._n 23._o imaginable_a for_o your_o own_o happiness_n and_o you_o will_v make_v he_o the_o best_a please_v and_o the_o most_o happy_a prince_n in_o the_o world_n now_o nothing_o recommend_v the_o present_a age_n it_o 36._o nothing_o so_o much_o recommend_v the_o present_a age_n as_o the_o good_a law_n make_v in_o it_o unto_o posterity_n so_o much_o as_o the_o wisdom_n and_o the_o 15._o the_o lord_n keeper_n speech_n apr._n 13._o 1675._o p._n 15._o temper_n of_o the_o law_n that_o be_v make_v in_o it_o for_o all_o succeed_a age_n judge_v of_o our_o law_n as_o we_o do_v of_o our_o ancestor_n by_o the_o true_a and_o unerring_a rule_n of_o experience_n in_o make_v of_o law_n therefore_o it_o will_v import_v we_o to_o consider_v that_o too_o many_o law_n be_v a_o snare_n for_o ibid._n id._n ibid._n snare_n 37._o but_o too_o many_o law_n be_v a_o snare_n mr._n grivel_v in_o 35_o eliz._n say_v in_o parliament_n as_o sir_n robert_n filmer_n report_v it_o in_o his_o freeholder_n grand_a inquest_n he_o wish_v not_o the_o make_n of_o many_o law_n since_o the_o more_o we_o make_v the_o less_o liberty_n we_o have_v ourselves_o her_o majesty_n not_o be_v bind_v by_o they_o government_n 38._o too_o few_o a_o weakness_n in_o the_o government_n pag._n 49_o 50._o too_o few_o be_v a_o weakness_n in_o the_o government_n too_o gentle_a be_v seldom_o obey_v too_o severe_a be_v as_o seldom_o execute_v and_o sanguinary_a law_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n either_o the_o cause_n state_n 39_o and_o sanguinary_a law_n either_o the_o cause_n or_o effect_v of_o a_o distemper_n in_o the_o state_n or_o the_o effect_n of_o a_o distemper_n in_o the_o state_n to_o establish_v this_o state_n there_o seem_v not_o to_o need_v ibid._n id._n ibid._n many_o new_a law_n some_o will_v always_o be_v want_v and_o therefore_o say_v the_o king_n to_o his_o parliament_n in_o his_o speech_n before_o this_o of_o my_o lord_n chancellor_n the_o principal_a end_n of_o my_o call_v you_o now_o be_v to_o know_v what_o 3._o the_o king_n speech_n apr._n 13._o 1675._o pag._n 3._o want_v 40._o some_o law_n will_v always_o be_v want_v you_o think_v may_v be_v yet_o want_v to_o the_o security_n of_o religion_n and_z property_n this_o speech_n of_o the_o king_n be_v as_o my_o lord_n chancellor_n say_v very_o want_v 41._o therefore_o the_o king_n call_v his_o parliament_n to_o know_v what_o be_v want_v true_o be_v in_o order_n to_o unite_v the_o heart_n of_o his_o 8._o the_o lord_n chancellor_n speech_n apr._n 13._o 1675._o pag._n 8._o parliament_n and_o people_n to_o himself_o by_o all_o the_o emanation_n of_o grace_n and_o goodness_n that_o from_o a_o great_a and_o generous_a prince_n can_v be_v expect_v and_o here_o he_o 42._o and_o this_o in_o order_n to_o unite_v the_o heart_n of_o both_o parliament_n and_o people_n to_o he_o the_o king_n be_v please_v to_o add_v the_o consideration_n of_o your_o ibid._n id._n ibid._n liberty_n and_o property_n and_o while_o he_o do_v so_o you_o may_v be_v sure_a that_o he_o who_o be_v so_o careful_a of_o your_o right_n will_v be_v mindful_a of_o his_o own_o too_o for_o he_o that_o do_v justice_n to_o all_o can_v never_o be_v want_v to_o himself_o and_o say_v the_o king_n about_o two_o month_n after_o i_o think_v i_o own_o 43._o and_o he_o that_o be_v so_o careful_a of_o our_o right_n sure_a aught_o to_o mind_v his_o own_o have_v give_v sufficient_a evidence_n to_o the_o world_n that_o i_o have_v not_o be_v want_v on_o my_o part_n 3._o the_o king_n speech_n to_o both_o house_n jun._n 9_o 1675._o pag._n 3._o in_o my_o endeavour_n to_o procure_v the_o full_a satisfaction_n of_o all_o my_o subject_n in_o the_o matter_n property_n 44._o the_o king_n not_o want_v in_o his_o endeavour_n to_o have_v all_o his_o people_n satisfy_v in_o matter_n both_o of_o religion_n and_o property_n both_o of_o religion_n and_o property_n i_o have_v not_o only_o invite_v you_o to_o those_o consideration_n at_o our_o first_o meeting_n but_o i_o have_v be_v careful_a through_o this_o whole_a session_n that_o not_o concern_v of_o my_o own_o shall_v divert_v you_o from_o they_o religion_n and_o liberty_n stand_v secure_v by_o 19_o the_o lord_n keeper_n speech_n jan._n 7._o 1673_o 4._o p._n 19_o the_o most_o sacred_a tie_n that_o be_v nay_o the_o king_n along_o king_n king_n he_o invite_v his_o parliament_n to_o those_o consideration_n not_o only_o at_o first_o but_o all_o along_o be_v along_o along_o religion_n and_o liberty_n secure_v by_o the_o most_o sacred_a tie_n that_o be_v we_o be_v be_v the_o king_n interest_n to_o prefer_v both_o great_a than_o we_o have_v a_o great_a interest_n in_o the_o preservation_n of_o both_o than_o you_o yourselves_o for_o as_o religion_n the_o protestant_a religion_n command_v your_o indispensable_a obedience_n so_o it_o be_v a_o just_a and_o lawful_a liberty_n which_o sweeten_v that_o command_n and_o endear_v it_o to_o you_o do_v not_o every_o man_n see_v that_o the_o king_n have_v law_n 48._o the_o king_n have_v give_v new_a life_n and_o motion_n to_o law_n give_v new_a life_n and_o motion_n to_o such_o law_n as_o be_v 19_o the_o lord_n keeper_n speech_n jan._n 7._o 1673_o 4._o pag._n 19_o long_o dead_a or_o fast_o asleep_a have_v he_o not_o command_v a_o rigorous_a and_o severe_a prosecution_n at_o law_n of_o all_o the_o officer_n and_o soldier_n in_o his_o themselves_o 49._o all_o officer_n and_o soldier_n severe_o to_o be_v prosecute_v when_o they_o misbehave_v themselves_o majesty_n ordinary_a guard_n when_o they_o mis-behave_a themselves_o towards_o the_o mean_a subject_n and_o do_v not_o this_o secure_a your_o property_n be_v not_o all_o the_o privilege_n from_o arrest_n which_o be_v claim_v by_o his_o majesty_n servant_n extraordinary_a ibid._n id._n ibid._n who_o be_v very_o numerous_a abrogate_a and_o do_v not_o this_o abrogate_a 50._o all_o privilege_n of_o arrest_n claim_v by_o any_o of_o the_o king_n servant_n abrogate_a prevent_v the_o delay_n and_o obstruction_n of_o justice_n these_o be_v not_o single_a and_o transient_a act_n but_o such_o act_n as_o flow_v from_o habit_n these_o be_v not_o leave_n ibid._n id._n ibid._n and_o blossom_n but_o true_a solid_a and_o last_a fruit_n long_o long_o may_v that_o royal_a tree_n live_v and_o flourish_n upon_o which_o these_o fruit_n habit_n 51._o these_z not_o single_a and_o transient_a act_n but_o such_o as_o flow_v from_o habit_n do_v grow_v but_o the_o king_n do_v not_o think_v this_o yet_o sufficient_a but_o he_o will_v go_v further_o on_o and_o give_v we_o new_a assurance_n that_o nothing_o can_v be_v more_o welcome_a to_o he_o than_o the_o receive_n of_o such_o bill_n from_o his_o parliament_n as_o may_v true_o tend_v to_o the_o happiness_n and_o ease_n of_o his_o government_n 52._o the_o king_n ready_a to_o gratify_v his_o people_n in_o further_a secure_v
not_o to_o send_v any_o person_n to_o be_v educate_v abroad_o in_o any_o popish_a college_n or_o seminary_n and_o we_o command_v all_o parent_n or_o guardian_n of_o any_o person_n or_o person_n now_o remain_v in_o any_o such_o college_n or_o seminary_n that_o they_o cause_v the_o say_a person_n or_o person_n speedy_o to_o return_v home_o as_o they_o will_v answer_v the_o contrary_a at_o their_o peril_n moreover_o we_o require_v all_o home_o 40._o none_o to_o be_v bring_v up_o in_o popish_a college_n abroad_o and_o where_o any_o be_v there_o speedy_o to_o return_v home_o person_n bear_v within_o any_o of_o our_o dominion_n and_o out_o of_o prison_n who_o have_v take_v order_n by_o any_o authority_n derive_v from_o the_o church_n or_o see_v of_o rome_n except_o mr._n john_n huddlestone_n to_o depart_v the_o kingdom_n before_o the_o twenty_o five_o day_n of_o march_n next_o according_a to_o the_o tenor_n of_o our_o late_a proclamation_n and_o also_o to_o depart_v the_o court_n within_o the_o fourteen_o day_n appoint_v by_o our_o late_a order_n in_o council_n and_o we_o forbid_v all_o papist_n or_o repute_v kingdom_n 41._o and_o all_o bear_v here_o in_o any_o of_o these_o dominion_n that_o have_v take_v order_n by_o any_o authority_n from_o rome_n to_o depart_v the_o kingdom_n papist_n to_o come_v into_o our_o palace_n at_o whitehal_n or_o st._n james_n or_o into_o any_o other_o place_n where_o our_o court_n shall_v be_v contrary_a to_o our_o late_a prohibition_n upon_o pain_n of_o imprisonment_n in_o the_o tower_n if_o he_o be_v a_o peer_n of_o the_o realm_n or_o in_o some_o other_o prison_n if_o he_o be_v of_o lesser_a quality_n so_o that_o you_o see_v if_o the_o conviction_n of_o all_o recusant_n &_o bring_v they_o under_o the_o penal_a law_n can_v suppress_v popery_n if_o without_o imprisonment_n 42._o and_o no_o papist_n nor_o repute_a papist_n to_o come_v to_o court_n upon_o pain_n of_o imprisonment_n stay_v for_o the_o form_n of_o the_o law_n in_o 9_o lord_n keeper_n speech_n to_o both_o house_n jan._n 7._o 1673_o 4._o pag._n 8_o &_o 9_o point_n of_o conviction_n the_o present_a forbid_v all_o papist_n or_o repute_a papist_n to_o come_v to_o court_n &_o the_o extend_v this_o prohibition_n to_o his_o royal_a palace_n be_v enough_o to_o discountenance_v they_o than_o sure_o his_o majesty_n have_v reason_n to_o believe_v that_o scarce_o any_o thing_n be_v want_v which_o can_v lawful_o be_v do_v or_o modest_o security_n 43._o so_o that_o sure_o now_o scarce_o any_o thing_n be_v want_v either_o for_o satisfaction_n or_o security_n be_v wish_v either_o for_o your_o satisfaction_n or_o your_o security_n indeed_o i_o can_v but_o think_v and_o confess_v that_o we_o have_v good_a cause_n to_o be_v solicitous_a after_o such_o security_n for_o they_o be_v person_n who_o doctrine_n teach_v they_o to_o study_v how_o to_o sap_n and_o undermine_v our_o very_a foundation_n as_o i_o can_v at_o large_a prove_v be_v it_o not_o improper_a to_o my_o present_a business_n and_o design_n but_o further_a it_o have_v be_v so_o stale_a a_o project_n to_o undermine_n popery_n 44._o a_o stale_a project_n to_o undermine_v the_o government_n by_o accuse_v it_o of_o endeavour_v to_o bring_v in_o popery_n the_o government_n by_o accuse_v it_o of_o endeavour_v to_o introduce_v popery_n and_o tyranny_n that_o a_o man_n will_v wonder_v to_o see_v it_o take_v up_o again_o 14._o chancellor_n speech_n to_o both_o house_n 23_o may_n 1678._o pag._n 12_o 13_o 14._o have_v we_o forget_v that_o religion_n &_o liberty_n be_v never_o true_o lose_v till_o they_o be_v make_v a_o handle_n and_o pretence_n for_o sedition_n be_v we_o so_o ill_a sedition_n 45._o our_o religion_n and_o liberty_n never_o lose_v till_o make_v a_o handle_n and_o pretence_n for_o sedition_n historian_n as_o not_o to_o remember_v when_o prelacy_n be_v call_v popery_n and_o monarchy_n tyranny_n when_o the_o property_n of_o nobility_n and_o gentry_n be_v hold_v to_o be_v destructive_a of_o liberty_n and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o dangerous_a thing_n for_o man_n to_o have_v any_o sense_n of_o their_o duty_n and_o allegiance_n do_v we_o know_v all_o this_o and_o suffer_v man_n without_o door_n to_o hope_v now_o 46._o therefore_o the_o same_o artifices_fw-la must_v not_o prevail_v now_o by_o our_o division_n to_o arrive_v at_o the_o same_o time_n again_o can_v we_o endure_v to_o see_v man_n break_v the_o act_n of_o oblivion_n every_o day_n by_o revive_v the_o memory_n of_o forget_a crime_n in_o new_a practice_n if_o fear_n and_o jealousy_n can_v ever_o become_v wise_a and_o good_a man_n it_o be_v only_o then_o when_o there_o be_v danger_n of_o a_o relapse_n no_o jealous_a 47._o it_o be_v wisdom_n in_o this_o respect_n to_o fear_n and_o to_o be_v jealous_a caution_n can_v be_v too_o great_a against_o the_o return_v of_o that_o fatal_a distemper_n from_o which_o we_o have_v be_v so_o late_o recover_v especial_o when_o some_o symptom_n of_o it_o begin_v again_o to_o appear_v in_o print_a libel_n and_o in_o several_a part_n of_o the_o nation_n it_o may_v perhaps_o be_v worth_a our_o while_n to_o consider_v whether_o we_o do_v not_o bring_v some_o kind_n of_o scandal_n upon_o the_o protestant_a it_o 48._o but_o not_o to_o doubt_v the_o continuance_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n since_o we_o have_v so_o many_o law_n to_o guard_v it_o religion_n when_o we_o seem_v so_o far_o to_o distrust_v the_o truth_n and_o power_n of_o it_o that_o after_o so_o many_o law_n that_o have_v be_v past_a to_o guard_v it_o after_o all_o the_o miraculous_a deliverance_n from_o the_o attempt_n which_o have_v be_v make_v against_o it_o we_o shall_v still_o be_v afraid_a of_o its_o continuance_n it_o be_v no_o doubt_n a_o duty_n which_o we_o owe_v to_o god_n and_o to_o ourselves_o to_o the_o present_a age_n and_o to_o posterity_n to_o improve_v the_o opportunity_n vineyard_n 49._o it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o improve_v all_o opportunity_n to_o fence_v our_o vineyard_n god_n give_v we_o of_o fence_v our_o vineyard_n and_o make_v the_o hedge_n about_o as_o strong_a as_o we_o can_v and_o the_o king_n have_v command_v i_o to_o tell_v you_o that_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o concur_v with_o we_o in_o any_o thing_n of_o this_o kind_n which_o shall_v be_v find_v want_v and_o security_n 50._o the_o king_n ready_a to_o concur_v in_o any_o thing_n which_o yet_o be_v want_v for_o our_o security_n which_o the_o christian_a prudence_n and_o justice_n of_o a_o parliament_n can_v propose_v as_o expedient_a have_v not_o the_o late_a act_n make_v it_o impossible_a absolute_o impossible_a for_o the_o most_o conceal_v papist_n that_o be_v to_o get_v into_o any_o kind_n of_o employment_n and_o do_v ever_o any_o law_n since_o the_o reformation_n employment_n 51._o no_o papist_n can_v get_v into_o any_o employment_n give_v we_o so_o great_a a_o security_n as_o this_o the_o october_n after_o the_o king_n come_v himself_o to_o his_o parliament_n and_o there_o say_v to_o they_o i_o now_o intend_v to_o acquaint_v you_o as_o i_o popery_n 52._o about_o the_o king_n acquaint_v the_o parliament_n with_o the_o plot_n against_o his_o person_n etc._n etc._n he_o will_v leave_v the_o matter_n to_o the_o law_n and_o he_o will_v do_v all_o he_o can_v to_o prevent_v the_o practice_n of_o those_o who_o be_v contrive_v to_o bring_v in_o popery_n shall_v always_o do_v with_o any_o thing_n that_o concern_v i_o that_o i_o have_v be_v inform_v of_o a_o design_n against_o my_o person_n by_o the_o jesuit_n of_o which_o i_o shall_v forbear_v any_o opinion_n lest_o i_o may_v seem_v to_o say_v too_o much_o or_o too_o little_a but_o i_o will_v leave_v the_o matter_n to_o the_o law_n and_o in_o 5._o king_n speech_n on_o monday_n 21th_o oct._n 1678._o p._n 4_o 5._o the_o mean_a time_n will_v take_v as_o much_o care_n as_o i_o can_v to_o prevent_v all_o manner_n of_o practice_n by_o that_o sort_n of_o man_n and_o of_o other_o too_o who_o have_v be_v tamper_n in_o a_o high_a degree_n with_o foreigner_n and_o contrive_v how_o to_o introduce_v popery_n among_o we_o now_o that_o the_o fear_n of_o popery_n may_v not_o too_o much_o disquiet_v you_o be_v please_v to_o consider_v that_o you_o have_v one_o security_n too_o 53._o this_o be_v one_o security_n more_o to_o we_o for_o that_o which_o be_v always_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o king_n honour_n and_o conscience_n be_v now_o the_o interest_n of_o his_o person_n too_o more_o since_o that_o which_o be_v always_o the_o interest_n of_o his_o majesty_n honour_n and_o conscience_n be_v now_o become_v the_o interest_n of_o his_o person_n too_o to_o protect_v the_o protestant_a religion_n and_o to_o prevent_v the_o swarm_a 14._o lord_n chancellor_n speech_n to_o the_o same_o p._n 13_o &_o 14._o of_o seminary_n priest_n for_o his_o majesty_n have_v tell_v you_o that_o
he_o have_v late_o receive_v information_n of_o design_n against_o his_o own_o life_n by_o the_o jesuit_n and_o though_o he_o do_v in_o no_o sort_n prejudge_v the_o person_n accuse_v yet_o the_o strict_a enquiry_n into_o jesuit_n 54._o this_o be_v a_o plot_n of_o the_o jesuit_n this_o matter_n have_v be_v a_o mean_n to_o discover_v so_o many_o other_o unwarrantable_a practice_n of_o they_o that_o his_o majesty_n have_v reason_n to_o look_v they_o 55._o but_o the_o king_n will_v look_v to_o they_o to_o they_o nor_o be_v these_o kind_n of_o man_n the_o only_a factor_n for_o rome_n religion_n 56._o lay-person_n too_o be_v agitator_n to_o promote_v the_o interest_n of_o a_o foreign_a religion_n but_o there_o be_v find_v among_o the_o laity_n also_o some_o who_o have_v make_v themselves_o agitator_n to_o promote_v the_o interest_n of_o a_o foreign_a religion_n who_o meddle_v with_o matter_n of_o state_n and_o parliament_n and_o carry_v on_o their_o design_n by_o a_o most_o dangerous_a correspondency_n with_o foreign_a nation_n what_o kind_n of_o process_n the_o proof_n will_v bear_v and_o to_o how_o high_a a_o degree_n the_o extent_n and_o nature_n of_o these_o crime_n will_v rise_v be_v under_o consideration_n and_o will_v be_v full_o leave_v to_o the_o course_n of_o law_n alas_o it_o be_v the_o profess_a and_o avow_a principle_n of_o these_o man_n 57_o it_o be_v the_o principle_n of_o such_o man_n to_o kill_v king_n rather_o soon_o than_o other_o man_n sort_n of_o man_n not_o to_o distinguish_v between_o the_o king_n and_o another_o man_n nay_o to_o kill_v he_o soon_o than_o any_o other_o man_n and_o yet_o the_o king_n mercy_n have_v be_v no_o less_o obstinate_a than_o their_o malice_n and_o wickedness_n few_o person_n have_v suffer_v and_o he_o have_v restrain_v the_o law_n from_o be_v severe_a to_o many_o who_o at_o the_o same_o time_n continue_v their_o plot._n this_o be_v speak_v by_o the_o lord_n chancellor_n may_v 8._o 1661._o of_o those_o traitor_n that_o go_v arm_v through_o the_o city_n but_o it_o may_v just_o be_v apply_v to_o these_o of_o this_o damnable_a popish_a plot._n gild_n and_o undervalue_v his_o compassion_n there_o have_v not_o be_v a_o week_n conspiracy_n 58._o scarce_o since_o the_o plot_n be_v first_o find_v out_o a_o week_n have_v be_v free_a without_o some_o fresh_a conspiracy_n since_o the_o first_o break_v out_o of_o this_o jesuitical_a plot_n in_o which_o there_o have_v not_o be_v fresh_a combination_n and_o conspiracy_n form_v against_o his_o person_n and_o against_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o yet_o upon_o all_o these_o alarm_n and_o the_o interception_n of_o such_o letter_n as_o will_v in_o all_o other_o country_n have_v law_n 59_o which_o in_o other_o country_n will_v have_v produce_v the_o rack_n here_o the_o offender_n be_v try_v by_o the_o precise_a form_n and_o rule_n of_o law_n produce_v the_o rack_n for_o further_a discovery_n he_o have_v leave_v the_o offender_n to_o his_o judge_n of_o the_o law_n and_o those_o judge_n to_o the_o precise_a form_n and_o ordinary_a rule_n of_o the_o law_n how_o have_v his_o majesty_n invite_v all_o person_n even_o those_o that_o be_v criminal_a to_o the_o high_a degree_n of_o guilt_n upon_o his_o gracious_a promise_n of_o pardon_n nay_o and_o of_o reward_n too_o if_o they_o will_v but_o in_o the_o prescribe_a time_n lay_v hold_v of_o the_o sceptre_n of_o his_o grace_n to_o come_v in_o and_o make_v their_o ingenuous_a confession_n to_o he_o and_o his_o council_n of_o this_o damnable_a and_o hellish_a design_n against_o both_o his_o royal_a person_n and_o these_o his_o kingdom_n yet_o how_o obstinate_o have_v they_o withstand_v all_o the_o tender_v of_o his_o proclamation_n that_o have_v be_v so_o unspeakable_o to_o their_o own_o benefit_n and_o have_v choose_v death_n rather_o than_o life_n as_o if_o they_o be_v resolute_o bend_v to_o out-go_v all_o his_o infinite_a kindness_n by_o the_o most_o cruel_a revenge_n upon_o themselves_o so_o that_o very_o well_o what_o be_v say_v of_o caesar_n may_v here_o be_v speak_v of_o his_o majesty_n that_o libentius_fw-la vitam_fw-la victor_n jam_fw-la daret_fw-la quàm_fw-la victi_fw-la acciperent_fw-la well_o but_o to_o proceed_v the_o parliament_n have_v show_v they_o 60._o when_o the_o parliament_n have_v show_v their_o great_a care_n for_o the_o king_n preservation_n he_o can_v not_o satisfy_v himself_o but_o must_v hearty_o thank_v they_o their_o great_a and_o extraordinary_a care_n for_o the_o safety_n and_o preservation_n of_o his_o majesty_n person_n in_o these_o time_n of_o danger_n the_o king_n as_o he_o say_v there_o can_v not_o satisfy_v himself_o without_o come_v thither_o on_o purpose_n 4._o king_n speech_n to_o both_o house_n saturday_n nou._n 9_o p._n 3_o 4._o to_o give_v they_o all_o his_o most_o hearty_a thanks_o for_o it_o nor_o do_v i_o think_v it_o enough_o to_o give_v you_o my_o thanks_o only_o but_o i_o hold_v myself_o oblige_v to_o let_v you_o see_v withal_o that_o i_o do_v as_o much_o study_v your_o preservation_n too_o as_o i_o can_v possible_o and_o religion_n 61._o but_o not_o only_o so_o he_o study_v as_o much_o our_o preservation_n as_o they_o do_v he_o and_o will_v join_v with_o they_o in_o all_o the_o way_n that_o may_v establish_v the_o protestant_a religion_n that_o i_o be_o as_o ready_a to_o join_v with_o you_o in_o all_o the_o way_n and_o mean_n that_o may_v establish_v a_o firm_a security_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n as_o your_o own_o heart_n can_v wish_v and_o this_o not_o only_o during_o my_o time_n of_o which_o i_o be_o sure_a you_o have_v no_o fear_n but_o in_o all_o future_a age_n even_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o therefore_o i_o be_o come_v to_o assure_v you_o that_o whatsoever_o reasonable_a bill_n you_o shall_v present_v to_o pass_v into_o law_n to_o make_v you_o safe_a in_o the_o reign_n of_o any_o successor_n so_o as_o they_o tend_v not_o to_o impeach_v the_o right_n of_o succession_n nor_o the_o descent_n of_o the_o crown_n in_o the_o true_a line_n and_o so_o as_o they_o restrain_v not_o my_o power_n age_n 62._o and_o that_o not_o only_o now_o but_o for_o future_a age_n nor_o the_o just_a right_n of_o any_o protestant_a successor_n shall_v find_v from_o i_o a_o ready_a concurrence_n and_o i_o desire_v you_o withal_o to_o think_v of_o some_o more_o effectual_a concurrence_n 63._o and_o therefore_o he_o tell_v they_o all_o reasonable_a bill_n shall_v find_v from_o he_o a_o ready_a concurrence_n mean_n for_o the_o conviction_n of_o popish_a recusant_n and_o to_o expedite_v your_o council_n as_o fast_o as_o you_o can_v that_o the_o world_n may_v see_v our_o unanimity_n and_o that_o i_o may_v have_v the_o opportunity_n of_o show_v you_o how_o ready_a i_o be_o to_o do_v any_o thing_n that_o may_v give_v comfort_n and_o satisfaction_n to_o such_o dutiful_a and_o loyal_a subject_n etc._n 64._o and_o he_o desire_v they_o to_o think_v of_o some_o more_o effectual_a way_n to_o convict_v popish_a recusant_n etc._n etc._n he_o meet_v his_o new_a parliament_n in_o march_n and_o then_o he_o tell_v they_o what_o he_o have_v be_v do_v since_o the_o dissolution_n of_o the_o other_o to_o gain_v the_o heart_n of_o all_o his_o people_n say_v he_o my_o lord_n and_o gentleman_n i_o meet_v you_o here_o with_o the_o most_o earnest_a desire_v that_o man_n can_v have_v to_o unite_v the_o mind_n of_o all_o my_o subject_n both_o to_o i_o and_o to_o one_o another_o and_o i_o resolve_v it_o shall_v be_v your_o fault_n if_o the_o success_n be_v not_o suitable_a plot._n 65._o he_o have_v exclude_v the_o popish_a lord_n from_o their_o seat_n in_o parliament_n he_o have_v execute_v several_a man_n and_o have_v not_o be_v idle_a in_o prosecute_a the_o discovery_n of_o the_o plot._n 4._o the_o king_n sp._n on_o thursday_n 6_o march_n 1678_o 9_o p._n 3_o 4._o to_o my_o desire_n i_o have_v do_v many_o great_a thing_n already_o in_o order_n to_o that_o end_n as_o the_o exclusion_n of_o the_o popish_a lord_n from_o their_o seat_n in_o parliament_n the_o execution_n of_o several_a man_n both_o upon_o the_o score_n of_o the_o plot_n and_o of_o the_o murder_n of_o sir_n edmundbury_n godfrey_n and_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o i_o have_v not_o be_v idle_a in_o prosecute_a the_o discovery_n of_o both_o as_o much_o further_a as_o have_v be_v possible_a in_o so_o short_a a_o time_n and_o above_o all_o i_o have_v command_v my_o brother_n to_o absent_v himself_o from_o i_o because_o i_o will_v not_o leave_v the_o most_o malicious_a york_n 66._o he_o also_o command_v the_o absence_n of_o the_o d._n of_o york_n man_n room_n to_o say_v i_o have_v not_o remove_v all_o cause_n which_o can_v be_v pretend_v to_o influence_n i_o towards_o popish_a counsel_n i_o shall_v not_o cease_v my_o endeavour_n daily_o work_n 67._o
distract_v with_o jealousy_n incurable_a gratify_v the_o papist_n in_o the_o revenge_n they_o wish_v for_o this_o discovery_n if_o they_o can_v see_v we_o distract_v with_o jealousy_n incurable_a and_o distrust_v the_o government_n to_o such_o a_o degree_n as_o shall_v weaken_v all_o that_o reverence_n by_o which_o it_o stand_v for_o then_o the_o plot_n will_v not_o be_v altogether_o without_o effect_n but_o those_o who_o they_o can_v not_o destroy_v by_o their_o conspiracy_n they_o shall_v have_v the_o satisfaction_n to_o see_v ruine_v themselves_o after_o the_o discovery_n so_o ourselves_o 85._o this_o will_v make_v they_o see_v we_o ruine_v ourselves_o that_o though_o we_o have_v escape_v that_o desolation_n which_o they_o intend_v to_o have_v bring_v upon_o we_o nothing_o can_v save_v we_o from_o that_o destruction_n which_o we_o shall_v bring_v upon_o ourselves_o 13._o id._n p._n 13._o but_o their_o expectation_n of_o this_o be_v as_o vain_a as_o their_o other_o vain_a 86._o but_o these_o their_o expectation_n be_v vain_a design_n be_v wicked_a for_o his_o majesty_n have_v already_o begin_v to_o let_v they_o see_v with_o what_o severity_n he_o intend_v to_o proceed_v against_o they_o 87._o for_o his_o majesty_n have_v let_v they_o see_v with_o what_o severity_n he_o will_v proceed_v against_o they_o they_o he_o have_v pass_v a_o law_n to_o disable_v all_o the_o nobility_n and_o gentry_n of_o that_o faction_n ever_o to_o sit_v in_o parliament_n and_o not_o content_a with_o that_o he_o do_v offer_v to_o the_o last_o parliament_n and_o do_v again_o renew_v the_o same_o offer_n to_o this_o parliament_n to_o pass_v any_o further_a law_n against_o popery_n which_o shall_v be_v desire_v so_o succession_n 88_o and_o that_o he_o will_v pass_v any_o further_a law_n against_o popery_n so_o as_o they_o do_v not_o entrench_v on_o prerogative_n alter_v the_o descent_n of_o the_o crown_n in_o the_o right_a line_n nor_o defeat_v the_o succession_n as_o the_o same_o extend_v not_o to_o the_o diminution_n of_o his_o own_o prerogative_n nor_o to_o alter_v the_o descent_n of_o the_o crown_n in_o the_o right_a line_n nor_o to_o defeat_v the_o succession_n he_o have_v refuse_v the_o petition_n of_o the_o lord_n who_o during_o the_o interval_n of_o parliament_n desire_v to_o be_v bring_v to_o their_o trial_n and_o after_o so_o long_a a_o imprisonment_n may_v reasonable_o enough_o have_v expect_v it_o but_o his_o majesty_n think_v it_o fit_a to_o reserve_v they_o to_o a_o more_o public_a and_o conspicuous_a trial_n in_o parliament_n ibid._n ibid._n but_o that_o which_o the_o king_n have_v be_v please_v to_o mention_v to_o you_o this_o morning_n surpass_v all_o the_o rest_n and_o be_v sufficient_a of_o itself_o alone_o to_o discharge_v all_o those_o fear_n of_o popish_a influence_n y._n 89._o he_o have_v part_v with_o his_o brother_n the_o d._n of_o y._n which_o many_o good_a man_n have_v too_o far_o entertain_v for_o now_o you_o see_v his_o majesty_n of_o his_o own_o accord_n have_v do_v that_o which_o will_v have_v be_v very_o difficult_a for_o you_o to_o ask_v and_o have_v deprive_v himself_o of_o the_o conversation_n of_o his_o royal_a brother_n by_o command_v he_o to_o depart_v the_o kingdom_n to_o which_o command_n his_o royal_a highness_n have_v pay_v a_o most_o humble_a and_o a_o most_o entire_a people_n 90._o and_o he_o that_o can_v do_v this_o sure_o now_o have_v no_o favourite_n but_o his_o people_n submission_n and_o obedience_n this_o separation_n be_v attend_v with_o a_o more_o than_o ordinary_a sorrow_n on_o both_o side_n but_o he_o that_o for_o your_o sake_n can_v part_v with_o such_o a_o brother_n and_o such_o a_o friend_n you_o may_v be_v sure_o have_v now_o no_o favourite_n but_o his_o people_n since_o therefore_o his_o majesty_n have_v show_v so_o much_o readiness_n to_o concur_v with_o and_o in_o a_o manner_n to_o prevent_v the_o desire_n of_o his_o parliament_n it_o be_v a_o miserable_a refuge_n our_o enemy_n trust_v to_o when_o they_o hope_v to_o see_v our_o zeal_n outrun_v our_o discretion_n and_o that_o we_o ourselves_o shall_v become_v the_o unhappy_a occasion_n of_o make_v our_o own_o counsel_n abortive_a and_o now_o that_o i_o may_v come_v to_o the_o high_a step_n of_o all_o and_o it_o 91._o now_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o that_o our_o religion_n be_v safe_a during_o only_o his_o reign_n but_o he_o will_v so_o well_o secure_v it_o to_o we_o that_o no_o after-succession_n shall_v be_v able_a in_o the_o least_o to_o alter_v it_o show_v you_o what_o his_o majesty_n once_o more_o have_v command_v his_o chancellor_n to_o declare_v unto_o his_o parliament_n say_v he_o his_o majesty_n have_v consider_v with_o himself_o that_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o that_o your_o religion_n and_o liberty_n be_v secure_a during_o his_o own_o reign_n but_o he_o think_v he_o owe_v it_o to_o his_o people_n to_o do_v all_o that_o in_o he_o lie_v that_o these_o blessing_n may_v be_v transmit_v to_o your_o posterity_n and_o so_o well_o secure_v to_o they_o that_o no_o succession_n in_o after-age_n may_v be_v able_a to_o work_v the_o least_o alteration_n and_o therefore_o his_o majesty_n who_o have_v often_o say_v in_o 7._o l._n chanc._n speech_n to_o both_o house_n 30_o apr._n 79._o p._n 5_o 6_o &_o 7._o thus_o 92._o and_o therefore_o that_o no_o papist_n may_v make_v any_o change_n either_o in_o church_n or_o state_n 1._o a_o popish_a from_o a_o protestant_a successor_n be_v to_o be_v distinguish_v and_o then_o to_o circumscribe_v his_o authority_n thus_o parliament_n that_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o consent_v to_o any_o law_n of_o this_o kind_n so_o as_o the_o same_o extend_v not_o to_o alter_v the_o descent_n of_o the_o crown_n in_o the_o right_a line_n nor_o to_o defeat_v the_o succession_n have_v now_o command_v this_o to_o be_v further_o explain_v and_o to_o the_o end_n it_o may_v never_o be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o any_o papist_n if_o the_o crown_n descend_v upon_o he_o to_o make_v any_o change_n either_o in_o church_n or_o state_n his_o majesty_n be_v willing_a that_o provision_n may_v be_v make_v first_o to_o distinguish_v a_o popish_a from_o a_o protestant_a successor_n then_o so_o to_o limit_v and_o to_o circumscribe_v the_o authority_n of_o a_o popish_a successor_n in_o these_o case_n follow_v that_o he_o may_v be_v benefice_n 93._o no_o popish_a successor_n to_o present_a to_o ecclesiastical_a benefice_n disable_v to_o do_v any_o harm_n first_o in_o reference_n to_o the_o church_n his_o majesty_n be_v content_a that_o care_n be_v take_v that_o all_o ecclesiastical_a and_o spiritual_a benefice_n etc._n 94._o as_o already_o no_o papist_n can_v sit_v in_o parliament_n so_o there_o shall_v never_o want_v a_o parl._n when_o the_o k._n shall_v happen_v to_o die_v but_o that_o then_o in_o be_v shall_v continue_v indissoluble_a for_o a_o competent_a time_n or_o if_o there_o be_v no_o parl._n then_o the_o last_o parl._n to_o reassemble_v etc._n etc._n and_o promotion_n in_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o crown_n may_v be_v confer_v in_o such_o a_o manner_n that_o we_o may_v be_v sure_a the_o incumbent_n shall_v always_o be_v of_o the_o most_o pious_a and_o learned_a protestant_n and_o that_o no_o popish_a successor_n while_o he_o continue_v so_o may_v have_v any_o power_n to_o control_v such_o presentment_n in_o reference_n to_o the_o state_n and_o civil_a part_n of_o the_o government_n as_o it_o be_v already_o provide_v that_o no_o papist_n can_v sit_v in_o either_o house_n of_o parliament_n so_o the_o king_n be_v please_v that_o it_o be_v provide_v too_o that_o there_o may_v never_o want_v a_o parliament_n when_o the_o king_n shall_v happen_v to_o die_v but_o that_o the_o parliament_n then_o in_o be_v may_v continue_v indissoluble_a for_o a_o competent_a time_n or_o if_o there_o be_v no_o parliament_n in_o be_v than_o the_o last_o parliament_n which_o be_v in_o be_v before_o that_o time_n may_v re-assemble_a and_o sit_v a_o competent_a time_n displace_v 95._o during_o such_o a_o popish_a successor_n reign_n no_o privy_a counsellor_n nor_o judge_n shall_v be_v put_v in_o or_o displace_v without_o any_o new_a summons_n or_o election_n and_z as_o no_o papist_n can_v by_o law_n hold_v any_o place_n of_o trust_n so_o the_o king_n be_v content_a that_o it_o may_v be_v further_o provide_v that_o no_o lord_n or_o other_o of_o the_o privy_a council_n no_o judge_n of_o the_o common_a law_n or_o in_o chancery_n shall_v at_o any_o time_n during_o the_o reign_n of_o any_o popish_a successor_n be_v put_v in_o or_o displace_v but_o by_o authority_n of_o parliament_n and_o that_o care_v also_o be_v take_v that_o none_o but_o sincere_a protestant_n may_v be_v justice_n of_o peace_n in_o reference_n to_o the_o military_a part_n the_o king_n be_v willing_a that_o parl._n 96._o no_o lord-lieutenant_n or_o deputy-lieutenant_n nor_o officer_n in_o the_o navy_n to_o
yet_o make_v acknowledgement_n 3._o his_o majesty_n care_n of_o they_o have_v be_v so_o much_o that_o we_o be_v oblige_v to_o all_o acknowledgement_n so_o loud_a a_o noise_n in_o the_o world_n god_n know_v these_o be_v as_o the_o great_a diana_n of_o the_o ephesian_n to_o we_o of_o these_o we_o be_v fond_a even_o to_o superstition_n and_o you_o shall_v find_v the_o king_n as_o affectionate_a to_o you_o and_o as_o desirous_a to_o preserve_v they_o all_o in_o their_o just_a measure_n as_o you_o can_v possible_o with_o any_o conscience_n wish_v he_o shall_v be_v produce_v 4._o the_o annal_n of_o our_o most_o happy_a time_n scarce_o have_v one_o year_n in_o they_o but_o what_o be_v more_o severe_a than_o a_o whole_a reign_n have_v yet_o produce_v nay_o the_o care_n of_o your_o civil_a right_n and_o liberties_n have_v be_v so_o much_o his_o majesty_n that_o the_o more_o 7._o the_o lord_n keeper_n speech_n on_o the_o 13_o of_o october_n 1675._o pag._n 6_o &_o 7._o you_o reslect_v upon_o these_o concern_v the_o more_o you_o will_v find_v yourselves_o oblige_v to_o acknowledge_v his_o majesty_n tenderness_n of_o you_o and_o indulgence_n to_o you_o search_v your_o own_o annal_n the_o annal_n of_o those_o time_n you_o account_v most_o happy_a you_o will_v scarce_o find_v one_o year_n without_o a_o example_n of_o something_o more_o severe_a and_o more_o extraordinary_a enjoy_v 5._o statue_n have_v be_v erect_v for_o those_o prince_n in_o foreign_a nation_n that_o never_o have_v half_o that_o moderation_n which_o we_o have_v live_v to_o enjoy_v than_o a_o whole_a reign_n have_v yet_o produce_v peruse_v the_o history_n of_o foreign_a nation_n and_o you_o shall_v find_v statue_n and_o altar_n too_o have_v be_v erect_v to_o the_o memory_n of_o those_o prince_n who_o best_a virtue_n never_o arrive_v to_o half_a that_o moderation_n which_o we_o let_v i_o add_v for_o these_o twenty_o year_n have_v live_v to_o see_v and_o to_o enjoy_v and_o let_v we_o all_o evermore_o remember_v this_o unexceptionable_a 4._o a_o letter_n from_o his_o majesty_n at_o breda_n apr._n 4_o 14_o 1660._o to_o the_o speaker_n of_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o pag._n 4._o truth_n which_o his_o sacred_a majesty_n be_v please_v honour_n 6._o this_o liberty_n be_v best_a preserve_v by_o preserve_v the_o king_n honour_n himself_o to_o lay_v down_o to_o we_o long_o ago_o that_o our_o liberty_n and_o property_n be_v best_a preserve_v by_o preserve_v the_o honour_n of_o the_o king_n for_o the_o greatness_n and_o dignity_n of_o the_o king_n 3_o the_o lord_n keeper_n speech_n wednesd_v oct._n 13._o 1675._o p._n 7._o the_o lord_n chancellor_n speech_n to_o baron_n thurland_n at_o the_o take_n of_o his_o oath_n january_n 24._o 1672_o 3._o pag._n 3_o safety_n 7._o the_o king_n greatness_n the_o people_n safety_n be_v the_o greatness_n and_o safety_n of_o his_o people_n therefore_o let_v not_o the_o king_n prerogative_n and_o the_o law_n be_v we_o 8._o therefore_o the_o king_n prerogative_n and_o the_o law_n shall_v not_o be_v two_o thing_n with_o we_o two_o thing_n with_o you_o for_o the_o king_n prerogative_n be_v law_n and_o the_o principal_a part_n of_o the_o law_n and_o therefore_o in_o maintain_v that_o you_o maintain_v the_o law_n the_o government_n of_o england_n be_v so_o excellent_o interweave_v that_o every_o part_n of_o the_o prerogative_n have_v a_o broad_a mixture_n of_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o subject_a the_o ease_n and_o safety_n of_o the_o people_n be_v inseparable_a from_o the_o greatness_n and_o security_n of_o the_o grow_v the_o know_v of_o our_o own_o interest_n will_v secure_v 4._o june_n 26._o 1673._o pag._n 4._o nation_n 9_o the_o knowledge_n of_o our_o own_o interest_n secure_v we_o to_o the_o king_n be_v and_o nation_n we_o to_o the_o king_n be_v and_o the_o nation_n be_v i_o repeat_v they_o thus_o together_o say_v the_o lord_n chancellor_n in_o his_o speech_n upon_o the_o lord_n treasurer_n be_v take_v his_o oath_n in_o the_o exchequer_n because_o none_o but_o mountebank_n in_o state_n matter_n can_v think_v of_o they_o asunder_o limit_n 10._o prerogative_n not_o extend_v beyond_o its_o due_a limit_n and_o if_o the_o not_o extend_v his_o prerogative_n beyond_o 9_o the_o lord_n keeper_n speech_n to_o both_o house_n january_n 7._o 1673_o 4._o pag._n 9_o its_o due_a limit_n can_v secure_v our_o liberty_n then_o sure_o we_o have_v no_o need_n to_o fear_v the_o least_o diminution_n of_o they_o for_o kingdom_n 11._o the_o king_n only_o consider_v his_o prerogative_n in_o order_n to_o preserve_v the_o peace_n and_o security_n of_o the_o kingdom_n say_v the_o king_n the_o peace_n and_o security_n 3._o the_o king_n speech_n april_n 5._o 1664._o pag._n 3._o of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o the_o welfare_n of_o my_o subject_n i_o study_v more_o than_o my_o prerogative_n indeed_o i_o consider_v my_o prerogative_n only_o in_o order_n to_o preserve_v the_o other_o do_v we_o not_o see_v that_o the_o king_n have_v make_v it_o his_o 8._o the_o lord_n keeper_n speech_n jan._n 7._o 1673_o 4._o pag._n 8._o care_n and_o his_o business_n to_o do_v all_o that_o be_v possible_a to_o prudence_n 12._o the_o law_n of_o the_o kingdom_n the_o measure_n of_o both_o his_o power_n and_o prudence_n preserve_v we_o in_o our_o civil_a right_n that_o he_o make_v the_o law_n of_o his_o kingdom_n the_o measure_n not_o only_o of_o his_o power_n but_o his_o prudence_n that_o he_o suffer_v no_o man_n to_o be_v wise_a than_o the_o law_n that_o he_o think_v he_o can_v judge_v of_o the_o health_n or_o sickness_n of_o his_o state_n by_o any_o better_a indication_n than_o the_o current_n state_n 13._o their_o current_n give_v the_o best_a judgement_n either_o of_o the_o health_n or_o sickness_n of_o the_o state_n of_o his_o law_n and_o suffer_v nothing_o to_o remain_v that_o may_v in_o the_o least_o measure_n hinder_v justice_n from_o flow_v in_o its_o due_a and_o proper_a channel_n now_o the_o administration_n of_o justice_n according_a 3._o his_o majesty_n declaration_n for_o enforce_v a_o late_a order_n make_v in_o council_n feb._n 12_o 1674_o 5._o pag._n 3._o to_o the_o settle_a and_o know_v law_n of_o the_o land_n be_v certain_o the_o most_o reasonable_a and_o land_n 14._o administration_n of_o justice_n according_a to_o the_o know_a law_n of_o the_o land_n proper_a method_n for_o attain_v and_o preserve_v the_o peace_n and_o safety_n both_o of_o church_n and_o state_n for_o law_n be_v the_o strength_n of_o a_o kingdom_n the_o wall_n and_o bulwark_n of_o a_o nation_n without_o which_o place_n be_v but_o as_o the_o forest_n kingdom_n 15._o what_o law_n be_v to_o a_o kingdom_n of_o wild_a beast_n to_o dwell_v in_o and_o the_o end_n of_o the_o law_n be_v to_o bridle_v man_n wild_a and_o loose_a exorbitance_n and_o to_o be_v instructive_a and_o to_o direct_v to_o duty_n now_o you_o shall_v hear_v what_o his_o majesty_n have_v end_n 16._o their_o end_n be_v please_v to_o say_v as_o to_o this_o point_n and_o first_o if_o you_o will_v but_o look_v into_o that_o letter_n which_o he_o send_v to_o the_o speaker_n of_o the_o honourable_a house_n of_o commons_o you_o will_v find_v there_o these_o word_n say_v he_o if_o you_o desire_v that_o reverence_n and_o obedience_n may_v be_v pay_v to_o the_o fundamental_a 7._o april_n 4_o 14_o 1660_o pag._n 6._o 7._o authority_n 17._o reverence_n and_o obedience_n to_o the_o fundamental_a law_n of_o the_o land_n be_v that_o the_o king_n desire_v to_o be_v swear_v to_o and_o all_o person_n in_o authority_n law_n of_o the_o land_n and_o that_o justice_n may_v be_v equal_o and_o impartial_o administer_v to_o all_o man_n it_o be_v that_o which_o we_o desire_v to_o be_v swear_v to_o ourselves_o and_o that_o all_o person_n in_o power_n and_o authority_n shall_v be_v so_o too_o in_o a_o word_n there_o be_v nothing_o that_o you_o can_v propose_v that_o may_v make_v the_o kingdom_n happy_a which_o we_o will_v not_o contend_v with_o you_o to_o compass_n and_o upon_o this_o confidence_n and_o assurance_n we_o have_v think_v fit_a to_o compass_v 18._o nothing_o can_v be_v propose_v to_o make_v the_o kingdom_n happy_a but_o he_o will_v contend_v with_o we_o to_o compass_v send_v you_o this_o declaration_n that_o you_o may_v as_o much_o as_o be_v possible_a at_o this_o distance_n see_v our_o heart_n and_o in_o the_o declaration_n that_o be_v enclose_v therein_o his_o majesty_n thus_o deliver_v himself_o we_o do_v not_o desire_v more_o to_o enjoy_v what_o be_v we_o than_o that_o all_o our_o 2._o the_o declaration_n pag._n 2._o subject_n may_v enjoy_v what_o by_o law_n be_v they_o they_o 19_o the_o king_n desire_v no_o more_o to_o enjoy_v his_o own_o than_o to_o have_v his_o subject_n enjoy_v what_o by_o law_n be_v they_o by_o a_o full_a and_o entire_a administration_n of_o justice_n throughout_o the_o land_n and_o
provocation_n and_o offence_n and_o the_o occasion_n of_o the_o like_a for_o the_o future_a if_o there_o be_v such_o division_n 9_o lord_n chanc._n speech_n to_o the_o same_o p._n 8_o 9_o as_o beget_v great_a thought_n of_o heart_n shall_v we_o call_v this_o peace_n because_o it_o be_v not_o war_n or_o because_o man_n do_v peace_n 150._o or_o otherwise_o such_o division_n look_v rather_o like_o war_n than_o peace_n not_o yet_o take_v the_o field_n as_o well_o we_o may_v call_v it_o health_n when_o there_o be_v a_o dangerous_a fermentation_n in_o the_o blood_n and_o spirit_n because_o the_o patient_n have_v not_o yet_o take_v his_o bed_n much_o of_o this_o strange_a diffidence_n and_o distrust_n which_o like_o a_o man_n 151._o all_o this_o diffidence_n rise_v from_o the_o artifices_fw-la of_o ill_a man_n general_a infection_n begin_v to_o spread_v itself_o into_o almost_o all_o the_o corner_n of_o the_o land_n rise_v from_o the_o artifice_n of_o ill_a man_n who_o create_v and_o nourish_v all_o the_o suspicion_n which_o they_o can_v devise_v but_o the_o cure_n of_o it_o lie_v perfect_o in_o your_o hand_n for_o all_o 11._o id._n p._n 11._o this_o will_v present_o vanish_v as_o soon_o as_o man_n shall_v see_v your_o acquiescence_n and_o the_o fruit_n of_o it_o in_o a_o cheerful_a concurrence_n with_o his_o majesty_n to_o all_o those_o good_a and_o public_a end_n which_o he_o have_v now_o so_o earnest_o recommend_v to_o you_o it_o will_v be_v somewhat_o strange_a and_o without_o all_o example_n in_o mean_n 152._o it_o will_v be_v strange_a for_o a_o nation_n to_o be_v twice_o undo_v by_o one_o and_o the_o same_o way_n and_o mean_n story_n that_o a_o nation_n shall_v be_v twice_o ruin_v twice_o undo_v by_o the_o selfsame_a way_n and_o mean_n the_o same_o fear_n and_o jealousy_n ibid._n id._n ibid._n machiavelli_n who_o they_o say_v be_v a_o author_n much_o study_v of_o late_a late_a 153._o machiavelli_n a_o author_n much_o study_v of_o late_a in_o this_o kingdom_n to_o extol_v his_o own_o excellent_a judgement_n and_o insight_n in_o history_n in_o which_o indeed_o he_o be_v a_o master_n will_v persuade_v man_n to_o believe_v that_o the_o true_a reason_n why_o so_o many_o unexpected_a accident_n and_o mischief_n fall_v out_o to_o the_o destruction_n of_o state_n and_o empire_n be_v because_o their_o governor_n like_a 154._o by_o nonobservance_n of_o former_a mischief_n to_o other_o state_n we_o ourselves_o come_v to_o fall_v into_o the_o like_a have_v not_o observe_v the_o same_o mischief_n heretofore_o in_o 19_o lord_n chanc._n sp._n 19_o may_n 1662._o p._n 17_o 18_o &_o 19_o story_n and_o from_o whence_o they_o proceed_v and_o what_o progress_n they_o make_v which_o he_o say_v if_o they_o have_v do_v they_o may_v easy_o have_v preserve_v themselves_o from_o ruin_n and_o prevent_v the_o inconvenience_n which_o have_v fall_v out_o i_o be_o sure_a you_o be_v all_o good_a historian_n and_o need_v only_o to_o resort_v to_o the_o record_n of_o your_o own_o memory_n remember_v how_o politician_n 155._o if_o we_o will_v but_o remember_v the_o late_a ill_a time_n and_o suffer_v our_o selx_n again_o to_o be_v undo_v by_o secret_a course_n of_o such_o vile_a man_n we_o shall_v be_v hold_v very_o ill_a historian_n and_o worse_a politician_n your_o peace_n have_v be_v former_o disturb_v by_o what_o contrivance_n and_o artifices_fw-la the_o people_n have_v be_v alarm_v with_o unreasonable_a and_o unnatural_a fear_n and_o jealousy_n and_o what_o dismal_a effect_n those_o fear_n and_o jealousy_n have_v produce_v remember_v how_o near_a monarchy_n have_v be_v dissolve_v and_o the_o law_n subvert_v under_o pretence_n of_o reform_v and_o support_v government_n law_n and_o justice_n and_o remember_v how_o many_o honest_a person_n be_v mislead_v by_o not_o discern_v consequence_n who_o will_v as_o soon_o have_v renounce_v their_o part_n in_o heaven_n as_o have_v concur_v in_o the_o first_o unwarrantable_a action_n if_o they_o have_v suspect_v what_o do_v follow_v and_o if_o we_o suffer_v the_o same_o enemy_n to_o break_v in_o upon_o we_o at_o the_o same_o avenue_n if_o we_o suffer_v our_o peace_n to_o be_v blow_v up_o by_o the_o same_o train_n and_o machination_n we_o shall_v be_v hold_v very_o ill_a historian_n and_o worse_a politician_n how_o happy_a may_v a_o kingdom_n be_v in_o the_o frequent_a assembly_n of_o it_o 156._o how_o happy_a may_v the_o kingdom_n be_v in_o the_o frequent_a assembly_n of_o its_o great_a council_n if_o nothing_o disturb_v it_o their_o great_a counsel_n where_o all_o that_o be_v grievous_a may_v be_v redress_v and_o all_o that_o be_v want_v may_v be_v enact_v if_o those_o counsel_n 13._o lord_n chanc._n sp._n 15_o feb._n 1976_o 7._o p._n 13._o be_v not_o render_v useless_a and_o impracticable_a by_o continue_v endless_a distraction_n if_o the_o presage_a malice_n of_o our_o enemy_n shall_v pretend_v to_o foretell_v any_o such_o fate_n as_o this_o to_o befall_v we_o the_o wisdom_n and_o the_o magnanimity_n of_o this_o great_a council_n will_v quick_o be_v too_o hard_a for_o all_o their_o augury_n the_o honour_n and_o the_o loyalty_n of_o this_o august_n and_o venerable_n assembly_n will_v leave_v no_o kind_n of_o room_n for_o any_o such_o divination_n ibid._n id._n ibid._n my_o lord_n and_o gentleman_n the_o king_n have_v so_o long_o have_v and_o still_o retain_v such_o honourable_a parliament_n 157._o the_o king_n honourable_a thought_n of_o his_o parliament_n thought_n of_o these_o assembly_n that_o we_o ought_v to_o make_v it_o one_o great_a part_n of_o our_o business_n to_o deserve_v the_o continuance_n of_o his_o majesty_n grace_n and_o good_a opinion_n 16._o id._n p._n 16._o let_v no_o contention_n then_o come_v near_o this_o place_n but_o that_o of_o a_o country_n 158._o the_o contention_n of_o a_o parliament_n shall_v be_v that_o of_o emulation_n who_o shall_v best_o serve_v his_o country_n noble_a emulation_n who_o shall_v serve_v his_o country_n best_o by_o well_o serve_v of_o the_o king_n let_v no_o passion_n enter_v here_o but_o that_o of_o a_o pious_a zeal_n to_o lay_v hold_n upon_o all_o opportunity_n of_o promote_a the_o honour_n and_o service_n of_o the_o crown_n till_o our_o enemy_n despair_n of_o ever_o profit_v by_o any_o disorder_n among_o we_o ibid._n id._n ibid._n for_o say_v the_o king_n i_o assure_v you_o whatsoever_o some_o ill_a man_n they_o 159._o the_o king_n never_o have_v any_o intention_n but_o of_o good_a to_o they_o will_v have_v believe_v i_o never_o have_v any_o intention_n but_o of_o good_a to_o you_o and_o to_o my_o people_n nor_o ever_o shall_v but_o will_v do_v all_o that_o i_o can_v for_o your_o safety_n and_o ease_n as_o far_o as_o you_o yourselves_o will_v suffer_v i_o and_o since_o these_o be_v my_o resolution_n i_o desire_v you_o will_v not_o drive_v i_o into_o extremity_n which_o must_v end_v 6._o king_n speech_n thursd_v 23_o may_n 1678._o pag._n 6._o ill_a both_o for_o you_o and_o i_o and_o which_o be_v worst_a of_o all_o for_o the_o nation_n which_o we_o ought_v all_o to_o have_v equal_a nation_n 160._o all_o aught_o to_o have_v a_o equal_a care_n of_o the_o nation_n care_n of_o therefore_o i_o desire_v we_o may_v prevent_v any_o disorder_n or_o mischief_n that_o may_v befall_v they_o by_o our_o disagreement_n and_o in_o case_n they_o do_v i_o shall_v leave_v it_o to_o god_n almighty_a to_o judge_v between_o we_o who_o be_v the_o occasion_n of_o it_o let_v i_o add_v this_o likewise_o which_o the_o king_n will_v always_o have_v to_o be_v remember_v and_o that_o be_v say_v he_o to_o let_v you_o know_v that_o i_o change_v 161._o the_o king_n will_v never_o suffer_v the_o method_n of_o pass_a law_n to_o be_v change_v will_v never_o more_o suffer_v the_o course_n and_o method_n of_o pass_a law_n to_o be_v change_v and_o that_o if_o several_a matter_n shall_v ever_o again_o be_v tack_v together_o in_o one_o bill_n that_o bill_n shall_v certain_o be_v lose_v let_v the_o importance_n of_o it_o be_v never_o so_o great_a 7._o id._n p._n 7._o the_o king_n will_v not_o suffer_v himself_o to_o believe_v it_o possible_a that_o bill_n 162._o the_o tack_n of_o several_a matter_n to_o one_o bill_n will_v lose_v that_o bill_n you_o shall_v ever_o forsake_v he_o when_o any_o difficulty_n or_o distress_n be_v near_o he_o and_o therefore_o he_o do_v 19_o lord_n chanc_n speech_n to_o the_o same_o p._n 15_o 16_o 17_o 18_o 19_o with_o great_a assurance_n expect_v your_o care_n to_o preserve_v he_o in_o the_o affection_n of_o his_o people_n but_o the_o king_n have_v so_o far_o express_v himself_o this_o day_n that_o it_o be_v evident_a the_o manner_n of_o your_o proceed_n be_v to_o he_o as_o considerable_a as_o the_o matter_n and_o that_o he_o will_v not_o accept_v a_o good_a bill_n how_o valuable_a soever_o it_o may_v be_v unless_o it_o come_v to_o
garolus_n secundus_fw-la dei_fw-la gratia_n angl_n scotice_n francice_v et_fw-fr hibernice_n rex_fw-la fidei_fw-la defensor_fw-la etc._z honi_fw-fr soit_fw-fr qvi_fw-fr mal_fw-fr y_fw-fr pense_fw-fr diev_n et_fw-fr mon_fw-fr droit_n memorabilia_fw-la or_o the_o most_o remarkable_a passage_n and_o counsel_n collect_v out_o of_o the_o several_a declaration_n and_o speech_n that_o have_v be_v make_v by_o the_o king_n his_o l._n chancellor_n and_o keeper_n and_o the_o speaker_n of_o the_o honourable_a house_n of_o commons_o in_o parliament_n since_o his_o majesty_n happy_a restauration_n anno_fw-la 1660._o till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o last_o parliament_n 1680._o reduce_v under_o four_o head_n viz._n 1._o of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n 2._o of_o popery_n 3._o of_o liberty_n and_o property_n etc._n etc._n 4._o of_o parliament_n by_o edward_n cook_n of_o the_o inner_a temple_n esquire_n humble_o dedicate_v to_o the_o grand_a council_n or_o senate_n of_o this_o kingdom_n london_n print_v for_o nevil_n simmons_n tho._n simmons_n and_o sam._n lee_n at_o the_o three_o cock_n at_o the_o west_n end_v of_o s._n paul_n the_o prince_n arm_n in_o ludgate-street_n and_o the_o prince_n arm_n in_o lombard_n street_n mcdlxxxi_o the_o introduction_n some_o person_n there_o be_v in_o the_o world_n of_o a_o humour_n not_o to_o be_v please_v with_o any_o thing_n they_o shall_v see_v in_o print_n unless_o withal_o the_o author_n put_v himself_o to_o the_o trouble_n of_o give_v they_o some_o considerable_a reason_n which_o induce_v he_o to_o that_o undertake_n now_o whither_o or_o no_o this_o that_o i_o shall_v give_v they_o will_v be_v to_o their_o great_a satisfaction_n i_o be_o not_o certain_a but_o however_o i_o will_v thus_o far_o ingenuous_o confess_v myself_o to_o they_o as_o to_o declare_v it_o be_v the_o true_a and_o only_o one_o that_o move_v i_o to_o present_v the_o world_n with_o these_o follow_a sheet_n have_v too_o notorious_o observe_v of_o late_a since_o this_o licentious_a sickness_n of_o the_o press_n the_o many_o abominable_a pamphlet_n that_o have_v come_v abroad_o no_o doubt_n with_o malicious_a design_n enough_o to_o alienate_v the_o affection_n of_o the_o good_a people_n of_o england_n and_o to_o infuse_v strange_a perplex_v fear_n and_o jealousy_n into_o they_o of_o the_o king_n and_o the_o government_n as_o if_o present_o the_o whole_a nation_n be_v to_o be_v turn_v topsy_n turuie_o our_o law_n cancel_v our_o liberty_n and_o property_n to_o be_v quite_o take_v away_o from_o we_o our_o parliament_n to_o be_v cashier_v our_o religion_n change_v and_o our_o life_n whole_o at_o the_o merciless_a devotion_n of_o thirsty_a man_n of_o blood_n i_o say_v have_v observe_v with_o great_a and_o sorrowful_a resentment_n these_o ill_a and_o dangerous_a book_n that_o have_v with_o a_o too_o open_a and_o insolent_a face_n appear_v to_o the_o heinous_a scandal_n as_o well_o as_o disturbance_n of_o the_o peace_n of_o these_o kingdom_n this_o be_v to_o prevent_v 12._o his_o majesty_n declaration_n to_o all_o his_o love_a subject_n dec._n 26._o 1662._o p._n 12._o the_o mischief_n aim_v at_o by_o the_o cage_a endeavour_n of_o rash_a and_o unquiet_a man_n who_o though_o weak_a and_o credulous_a person_n may_v be_v beguile_v by_o they_o yet_o i_o be_o sure_a all_o honest_a and_o good_a man_n will_v look_v upon_o with_o detestation_n as_o the_o most_o dangerous_a enemy_n of_o the_o crown_n and_o of_o the_o peace_n and_o happiness_n of_o the_o nation_n and_o among_o the_o many_o venomous_a insinuation_n which_o have_v be_v 19_o lord_n keeper_n speech_n jan._n 7._o 1673._o fol._n 18._o 19_o make_v use_n of_o the_o fear_n and_o jealousy_n of_o religion_n and_o liberty_n be_v of_o the_o worst_a sort_n and_o the_o most_o dangerous_a impression_n certain_o malice_n be_v never_o more_o buisy_n than_o it_o have_v be_v in_o these_o report_n and_o it_o have_v be_v assist_v by_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o invention_n but_o it_o be_v to_o be_v hope_v that_o no_o man_n judgement_n or_o affection_n will_v be_v either_o mislead_v or_o disturb_v by_o such_o report_n this_o as_o nothing_o be_v capable_a of_o gratify_v they_o more_o the_o great_a 18._o lord_n keeper_n speech_n ap._n 13._o 75._o fol._n 18._o enemy_n of_o our_o security_n be_v most_o industrious_a to_o promote_v as_o know_v very_o well_o that_o this_o alone_a will_v do_v they_o more_o service_n than_o the_o best_a of_o their_o auxiliary_n these_o be_v they_o that_o hope_v to_o see_v and_o practise_v to_o bring_v about_o new_a change_n and_o revolution_n in_o the_o government_n it_o be_v almost_o a_o irreparable_a reproach_n the_o protestant_a religion_n have_v 22._o lord_n chancel_n speech_n sep._n 13._o 1660._o p._n 22._o undergo_v from_o the_o division_n and_o distraction_n which_o have_v be_v so_o notorious_a within_o this_o kingdom_n this_o you_o shall_v find_v hereafter_o i_o will_v demonstrate_v to_o you_o in_o its_o proper_a place_n and_o as_o difference_n and_o distemper_n in_o religion_n have_v too_o much_o disturb_v 20._o lord_n ch._n sp._n sep._n 13._o 1660._o p._n 19_o 20._o the_o peace_n of_o the_o kingdom_n which_o be_v a_o consideration_n that_o must_v make_v every_o religious_a heart_n to_o bleed_v to_o see_v that_o religion_n which_o shall_v be_v the_o strong_a obligation_n and_o cement_n of_o affection_n and_o brotherly_a kindness_n and_o compassion_n make_v now_o by_o the_o perverse_a wrangling_n of_o passionate_a and_o froward_a man_n the_o ground_n of_o all_o animosity_n hatred_n malice_n and_o revenge_n so_o no_o less_o heaty_n and_o distemper_a have_v some_o person_n be_v on_o the_o other_o hand_n in_o wicked_o labour_v to_o set_v we_o altogether_o by_o the_o ear_n and_o to_o put_v we_o into_o a_o fatal_a combustion_n by_o their_o slanderous_a calumny_n and_o factious_a reproach_n of_o the_o state_n never_o be_v this_o spirit_n of_o libel_v more_o 11._o lord_n ch._n sp._n monday_n may_v 19_o 6●_n at_o their_o prorog_n p._n 10_o 11._o pregnant_a than_o it_o be_v now_o nor_o king_n nor_o parliament_n nor_o church_n nor_o state_n ever_o more_o expose_v to_o those_o flagella_fw-la linguae_fw-la those_o stroke_n of_o the_o tongue_n from_o which_o god_n almighty_a can_v only_o preserve_v the_o most_o innocent_a and_o most_o excellent_a person_n as_o if_o repine_a and_o murmur_v revile_v and_o affront_a public_a authority_n be_v the_o peculiar_a exercise_n of_o the_o nation_n to_o keep_v it_o in_o health_n as_o if_o england_n have_v so_o much_o of_o the_o merchant_n nunquam_fw-la habendi_fw-la fructu_fw-la faelix_fw-la semper_fw-la autem_fw-la quaerendi_fw-la cupiditate_fw-la miserrima_n now_o do_v it_o not_o 5._o his_o majesty_n speech_n mond_n march_n 21._o 1663._o p._n 5._o behoove_v we_o all_o to_o be_v as_o watchful_a to_o prevent_v as_o they_o be_v to_o contrive_v their_o mischief_n shall_v not_o we_o make_v it_o our_o business_n to_o strengthen_v the_o hand_n of_o government_n and_o to_o shame_v the_o enemy_n of_o it_o by_o bannish_a all_o manner_n of_o distrust_n if_o we_o do_v not_o we_o shall_v be_v in_o danger_n to_o 18._o lord_n ch._n sp._n thurs_n may_v 23._o 78._o p._n 18._o become_v not_o only_o the_o most_o miserable_a but_o the_o most_o unpitied_a nation_n under_o heaven_n let_v this_o then_o be_v to_o restore_v the_o whole_a nation_n to_o its_o primitive_a temper_n 12._o lord_n ch._n sp._n thurs_n sep._n 13._o 1660._o p._n 12._o and_o integrity_n to_o its_o old_a good_a manner_n it_o be_v old_a good_a humour_n and_o it_o be_v old_a good_a nature_n a_o virtue_n so_o peculiar_a so_o appropriate_v by_o god_n almighty_a to_o this_o nation_n that_o it_o can_v be_v translate_v into_o no_o other_o language_n and_o hardly_o practise_v by_o any_o other_o people_n 5._o his_o majesty_n speech_n tuesday_n july_n 30._o 1661._o the_o day_n of_o their_o adjurr_n p._n 5._o and_o though_o there_o be_v very_o many_o alas_o too_o many_o distemper_v spirit_n which_o lie_v in_o wait_n to_o do_v mischief_n by_o lay_v reproach_n upon_o the_o court_n upon_o the_o government_n reproach_n upon_o the_o king_n &_o reproach_n upon_o the_o parliament_n yet_o i_o hope_v by_o our_o joint_a unity_n &_o right_a understanding_n our_o vigilant_a carefulness_n and_o application_n we_o may_v be_v able_a to_o weigh_v down_o and_o prevent_v any_o mischief_n they_o intend_v against_o we_o foreign_a nation_n have_v lay_v it_o down_o for_o a_o maxim_n in_o their_o politic_n 18_o lord_n chancel_n speech_n thurs_n march_v 6._o ●●78_n p._n 18_o that_o england_n can_v never_o be_v destroy_v but_o by_o its_o self_n and_o that_o it_o be_v in_o vain_a to_o make_v any_o attempt_n upon_o this_o nation_n until_o they_o be_v in_o some_o great_a disorder_n and_o confusion_n among_o themselves_o let_v we_o then_o every_o one_o in_o the_o way_n of_o our_o several_a capacity_n endeavour_v to_o make_v the_o ambitious_a despair_n as_o soon_o as_o we_o can_v by_o establish_v so_o perfect_a a_o intelligence_n
that_o there_o may_v be_v but_o one_o heart_n and_o one_o soul_n among_o we_o he_o that_o do_v not_o now_o put_v his_o hand_n and_o heart_n to_o support_v the_o king_n 23._o lord_n c._n s._n to_o si._n job_n harleton_n than_o choose_a speaker_n to_o the_o house_n of_o com._n feb._n 5._o 1672._o p._n 23._o in_o the_o common_a cause_n of_o this_o kingdom_n can_v hardly_o ever_o hope_v for_o such_o another_o opportunity_n or_o find_v a_o time_n to_o make_v satisfaction_n for_o the_o omission_n of_o this_o let_v we_o tryby_o our_o mean_n to_o raise_v up_o the_o heart_n and_o hope_n of_o all_o those_o who_o ill_a man_n have_v wrought_v upon_o to_o such_o a_o degree_n as_o to_o cast_v they_o into_o a_o sadness_n end_n into_o a_o despondency_n which_o be_v most_o unreasonable_a 22._o lord_n ch._n sp._n ap._n 13._o 75._o p._n 22._o what_o the_o roman_n scorn_v to_o do_v after_o the_o battle_n of_o cannae_n what_o the_o venetian_n never_o do_v when_o they_o have_v lose_v all_o their_o terra_fw-la firma_fw-la that_o man_n be_v now_o teach_v to_o think_v a_o virtue_n and_o the_o sign_n of_o a_o wise_a and_o good_a man_n desperare_fw-la de_fw-fr republica_n and_o let_v we_o try_v what_o we_o can_v to_o confirm_v the_o faith_n of_o those_o that_o 23._o p._n 23._o be_v make_v weak_a and_o give_v to_o the_o king_n the_o present_a of_o all_o our_o heart_n be_v the_o full_a assurance_n of_o all_o our_o life_n and_o fortune_n to_o preserve_v he_o in_o his_o just_a prerogative_n that_o he_o may_v with_o the_o great_a confidence_n and_o cheerfulness_n still_o secure_a and_o further_o promote_v the_o true_a protestant_n religion_n and_o all_o due_a liberty_n and_o property_n to_o these_o kingdom_n then_o will_v the_o king_n esteem_v himself_o a_o rich_a prince_n then_o if_o he_o be_v possess_v of_o all_o the_o treasure_n of_o the_o east_n and_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v question_v or_o suspect_v his_o majesty_n affection_n towards_o the_o protestant_a religion_n and_o his_o firm_a resolution_n still_o to_o maintain_v it_o together_o with_o all_o our_o civil_a right_n let_v he_o be_v please_v to_o hear_v he_o give_v his_o own_o royal_a word_n for_o it_o and_o as_o solomon_n say_v where_o the_o word_n of_o a_o king_n be_v there_o be_v power_n and_o first_o to_o begin_v with_o religion_n chap._n i._n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n for_o as_o his_o majesty_n very_o wise_o have_v observe_v to_o we_o in_o his_o declaration_n to_o all_o his_o love_a subject_n of_o his_o kingdom_n religion_n 1._o of_o religion_n of_o england_n and_o dominion_n of_o wales_n concern_v ecclesiastical_a affair_n in_o the_o very_a year_n of_o his_o happy_a restauration_n 25_o day_n of_o oct._n 1660._o pag._n 3._o there_o be_v so_o close_a a_o connexion_n between_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o state_n that_o the_o one_o can_v be_v disturb_v without_o the_o other_o these_o be_v his_o word_n how_o much_o say_v he_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o state_n be_v concern_v in_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n and_o how_o difficult_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v to_o preserve_v order_n and_o government_n in_o civil_a whilst_o there_o be_v no_o order_n or_o government_n in_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n be_v evident_a to_o the_o world_n and_o this_o little_a part_n of_o the_o world_n our_o own_o dominion_n have_v have_v so_o late_a experience_n of_o it_o that_o we_o may_v very_o well_o acquiesce_v in_o the_o conclusion_n without_o enlarge_n ourselves_o in_o discourse_n upon_o it_o it_o be_v a_o subject_a we_o have_v have_v frequent_a occasion_n to_o contemplate_v upon_o and_o to_o lament_v abroad_o as_o well_o as_o at_o home_n true_a religion_n have_v a_o enlighten_v influence_n be_v 2._o what_o religion_n be_v over_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n it_o work_v upon_o 11._o lord_n keep_v speech_n april_n 13._o 1675._o pag._n 11._o the_o conscience_n &_o be_v a_o inward_a principle_n of_o the_o divine_a life_n by_o which_o good_a man_n do_v govern_v all_o their_o action_n and_o if_o right_o follow_v and_o obey_v how_o great_a right_a 3._o how_o sweet_a and_o peaceable_a where_o it_o be_v right_a will_v the_o harmony_n of_o affection_n be_v among_o we_o the_o impression_n which_o the_o law_n of_o religion_n make_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o good_a man_n be_v all_o heal_a and_o sanatory_n there_o be_v no_o divide_v &_o impera_fw-la within_o her_o district_n no_o furious_a heat_n and_o hostile_a clashing_n to_o be_v hear_v where_o she_o have_v uncontrolled_a power_n and_o sovereignty_n that_o unruly_a and_o unmanly_a passion_n which_o no_o question_n the_o divine_a nature_n exceed_o abhor_v sometime_o and_o i_o fear_v too_o frequent_o transport_v those_o who_o be_v in_o the_o right_n as_o well_o as_o those_o who_o be_v in_o the_o wrong_n and_o leave_v 22._o lord_n chan._n speech_n thursday_n sept._n 13._o 1660._o p._n 20._o 21_o 22._o the_o latter_a more_o excusable_a than_o the_o former_a when_o man_n who_o find_v their_o manner_n and_o disposition_n very_o conformable_a in_o all_o the_o necessary_a obligation_n of_o humane_a nature_n avoid_v one_o another_o conversation_n and_o grow_v first_o unsociable_a and_o then_o uncharitable_a to_o each_o other_o because_o one_o can_v think_v as_o the_o other_o do_v and_o from_o this_o separation_n we_o entitle_v god_n to_o the_o patronage_n of_o and_o concernment_n in_o our_o fancy_n and_o distinction_n and_o pure_o for_o his_o sake_n hate_v charity_n 4._o a_o eminent_a instance_n of_o christian_a love_n and_o charity_n one_o another_o hearty_o it_o be_v not_o so_o of_o old_a when_o one_o of_o the_o most_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o church_n tell_v we_o that_o love_n and_o charity_n be_v so_o signal_n and_o eminent_a in_o the_o primitive_a christian_n that_o it_o even_o draw_v admiration_n and_o envy_n from_o their_o adversary_n vide_fw-la inquiunt_fw-la ut_fw-la inuicem_fw-la se_fw-la diligunt_fw-la their_o adversary_n in_o that_o in_o which_o they_o most_o agree_v in_o their_o very_a prosecution_n of_o they_o have_v their_o passion_n and_o animosity_n among_o themselves_o they_o be_v only_a christian_n that_o love_v and_o cherish_v and_o comfort_v and_o be_v ready_a to_o die_v for_o one_o another_o quid_fw-la nunc_fw-la illi_fw-la dicerent_fw-la christiani_n si_fw-la nostra_fw-la viderunt_fw-la tempora_fw-la say_v the_o incomparable_a grotius_n how_o will_v they_o look_v upon_o our_o sharp_a and_o virulent_a contention_n in_o the_o debate_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o the_o bloody_a war_n that_o have_v proceed_v from_o those_o contention_n whilst_o every_o one_o pretend_v to_o all_o the_o mark_n which_o be_v to_o attend_v upon_o the_o true_a church_n except_o only_o that_o which_o be_v inseparable_a from_o it_o charity_n to_o one_o another_o how_o do_v these_o in_o the_o late_o distract_v time_n who_o will_v christ_n 5._o how_o different_a christian_n be_v from_o the_o temper_n and_o spirit_n of_o christ_n needs_o be_v call_v christian_n differ_v from_o christ_n the_o true_a and_o only_a head_n of_o the_o church_n how_o calm_a and_o quiet_a how_o sedate_n and_o peaceable_a be_v he_o throughout_o the_o whole_a conduct_n of_o his_o life_n though_o he_o walk_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o a_o stubborn_a and_o perverse_a generation_n that_o despise_v his_o doctrine_n reproach_v he_o for_o his_o miracle_n in_o say_v that_o he_o cast_v out_o devil_n through_o beelzebub_n the_o prince_n of_o the_o devil_n he_o come_v to_o his_o own_o and_o his_o own_o receive_v he_o not_o yet_o he_o be_v sweet_a and_o affable_a in_o all_o his_o conversation_n all_o 6._o christ_n be_v meek_a and_o courteous_a gentle_a and_o affable_a to_o all_o continual_o do_v good_a to_o those_o who_o be_v his_o enemy_n and_o the_o worst_a of_o they_o too_o though_o he_o be_v revile_v yet_o he_o revile_v not_o again_o and_o though_o he_o be_v oppress_v and_o afflict_a yet_o he_o open_v not_o his_o mouth_n when_o he_o be_v wound_v for_o our_o transgression_n and_o bruise_v for_o our_o iniquity_n and_o the_o chastisement_n of_o our_o peace_n be_v upon_o he_o and_o by_o his_o stripe_n we_o be_v heal_v yet_o he_o go_v as_o a_o lamb_n to_o the_o slaughter_n and_o as_o a_o sheep_n before_o the_o shearer_n he_o be_v dumb_a and_o open_v not_o his_o mouth_n but_o just_a before_o his_o expiration_n upon_o the_o cross_n he_o merciful_o pour_v out_o this_o prayer_n for_o those_o his_o enemy_n that_o can_v not_o forbear_v break_v forth_o into_o this_o curse_n of_o his_o blood_n be_v upon_o we_o and_o our_o child_n that_o god_n will_v free_o pardon_v they_o in_o this_o their_o sin_n father_n say_v he_o forgive_v they_o they_o know_v not_o what_o they_o do_v but_o how_o do_v these_o make_v it_o their_o business_n to_o rend_v another_o 7._o we_o be_v sour_a and_o morose_a fierce_a and_o bitter_a one_o against_o another_o and_o divide_v the_o church_n by_o tie_v it_o up_o
swerve_v from_o it_o and_o nothing_o can_v be_v propose_v to_o manifest_v our_o zeal_n and_o affection_n for_o it_o to_o which_o we_o will_v not_o ready_o consent_v and_o we_o hope_v in_o due_a time_n ourselves_o so_o propose_v some_o what_o to_o you_o for_o the_o propagation_n of_o it_o that_o will_v satisfy_v the_o world_n that_o we_o have_v always_o make_v it_o both_o our_o care_n and_o our_o study_n and_o have_v enough_o observe_v what_o be_v most_o like_a to_o bring_v disadvantage_n to_o it_o his_o majesty_n see_v that_o it_o be_v the_o first_o ca_fw-mi 17._o religion_n as_o it_o be_v first_o in_o our_o thought_n so_o it_o be_v the_o king_n first_o and_o principal_a ca_fw-mi thing_n in_o all_o our_o thought_n and_o we_o can_v but_o 9_o lord_n keep_v speech_n april_n 13._o 1675._o pag._n 9_o see_v that_o it_o have_v be_v and_o still_o be_v the_o first_o and_o principal_a part_n of_o his_o care_n and_o this_o royal_a declaration_n of_o himself_o join_v to_o what_o doubt_v 18._o therefore_o we_o need_v not_o doubt_v he_o have_v since_o do_v carry_v in_o itself_o so_o evident_a a_o assurance_n and_o be_v stamp_v by_o so_o sacred_a a_o authority_n that_o there_o remain_v no_o place_n for_o doubt_v nothing_o can_v scarce_o be_v add_v to_o the_o efficacy_n of_o it_o ib._n id._n ib._n than_o after_o a_o repetition_n of_o the_o same_o word_n just_a above_o cite_v to_o the_o speaker_n of_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o in_o his_o majesty_n declaration_n concern_v ecclesiastical_a affair_n he_o proceed_v thus_o and_o the_o truth_n 5._o pag._n 4._o 5._o abroad_o 19_o the_o king_n most_o fit_a to_o propose_v be_v the_o most_o competent_a judge_n from_o his_o experience_n with_o the_o most_o learned_a of_o the_o reform_a church_n abroad_o be_v we_o do_v think_v ourselves_o the_o more_o competent_a to_o propose_v and_o with_o god_n assistance_n to_o determine_v many_o thing_n now_o in_o difference_n from_o the_o time_n we_o have_v spend_v and_o the_o experience_n we_o have_v have_v in_o most_o of_o the_o reform_a church_n abroad_o in_o france_n in_o the_o low_a country_n and_o in_o germany_n where_o we_o have_v have_v frequent_a conference_n with_o the_o most_o learned_a man_n who_o have_v unanimous_o lament_v the_o great_a reproach_n the_o protestant_a religion_n undergo_v from_o the_o distemper_n and_o too_o notorious_a schisin_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n church_n 20._o our_o religion_n suffer_v from_o the_o distemper_n and_o schism_n that_o be_v in_o the_o church_n in_o england_n and_o as_o the_o most_o learned_a among_o they_o have_v always_o with_o great_a submission_n and_o reverence_n acknowledge_v and_o magnify_v the_o establish_a government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o the_o great_a countenance_n and_o shelter_v the_o protestant_a religion_n receive_v from_o it_o before_o these_o unhappy_a time_n so_o many_o of_o they_o have_v with_o great_a ingenuity_n and_o sorrow_n confess_v that_o they_o be_v too_o easy_o mislead_v by_o misinformation_n and_o prejudice_n into_o some_o disesteem_n of_o it_o as_o if_o it_o have_v too_o much_o comply_v with_o the_o church_n world_n 21._o church_n of_o england_n the_o best_a fence_n against_o popery_n in_o the_o world_n of_o rome_n whereas_o they_o now_o acknowledge_v it_o to_o be_v the_o best_a fence_n god_n have_v yet_o raise_v against_o popery_n in_o the_o world_n and_o we_o be_v persuade_v they_o do_v with_o great_a zeal_n wish_v it_o restore_v to_o its_o old_a dignity_n and_o veneration_n and_o a_o little_a after_o in_o pag._n 8_o 9_o he_o further_o say_v we_o need_v england_n 22._o the_o king_n great_a esteem_n for_o the_o church_n of_o england_n not_o profess_v the_o high_a affection_n and_o esteem_n we_o have_v for_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o it_o be_v establish_v by_o law_n the_o reverence_n to_o which_o have_v support_v we_o with_o god_n blessing_n against_o many_o temptation_n as_o to_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o presbyterian_o concern_v episcopacy_n hear_v how_o the_o king_n declare_v himself_o in_o this_o point_n when_o we_o be_v in_o holland_n say_v he_o we_o be_v attend_v by_o many_o grave_n and_o learned_a minister_n from_o hence_o who_o be_v look_v upon_o as_o most_o able_a and_o principal_a assertor_n of_o the_o presbyterian_a episcopacy_n 23._o presbyterian_o affectionate_a to_o the_o king_n zealous_a for_o the_o peace_n of_o church_n and_o state_n and_o no_o enemy_n to_o episcopacy_n opinion_n with_o who_o we_o have_v as_o much_o conference_n as_o the_o multitude_n of_o affair_n which_o be_v then_o upon_o we_o will_v permit_v we_o to_o have_v and_o to_o our_o great_a satisfaction_n and_o comfort_n find_v they_o person_n full_a of_o affection_n to_o we_o of_o zeal_n for_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n and_o state_n and_o neither_o enemy_n as_o they_o whitehall_n pag._n 5._o declar._n conc_fw-fr eccles_n affair_n octob._n 25._o 1660._o at_o whitehall_n have_v be_v give_v out_o to_o be_v to_o episcopacy_n or_o liturgy_n but_o modest_o to_o desire_v such_o alalteration_n in_o either_o as_o without_o shake_a foundation_n may_v allay_v the_o present_a distemper_n which_o the_o indisposition_n of_o the_o time_n and_o the_o tenderness_n of_o some_o man_n conscience_n have_v contract_v and_o we_o further_o find_v upon_o the_o full_a conference_n we_o person_n 24._o the_o mischief_n the_o church_n labour_v under_o as_o well_o as_o the_o state_n result_v from_o the_o passion_n and_o interest_n of_o private_a person_n have_v have_v with_o the_o learned_a man_n of_o several_a persuasion_n that_o the_o mischief_n under_o which_o both_o the_o church_n and_o state_n do_v at_o present_a suffer_v do_v not_o result_v from_o any_o form_a doctrine_n or_o conclusion_n same_o pag._n 7._o of_o the_o same_o woich_a either_o party_n maintain_v or_o avow_v but_o from_o the_o passion_n and_o appetite_n and_o interest_n of_o particular_a person_n who_o contract_v great_a prejudice_n to_o each_o other_o from_o those_o affection_n than_o will_v natural_o arise_v from_o their_o opinion_n for_o we_o must_v for_o the_o honour_n of_o all_o those_o of_o either_o persuasion_n same_o 25._o the_o profession_n and_o desire_n of_o both_o persuasion_n for_o the_o advance_v of_o religion_n be_v the_o same_o with_o who_o we_o have_v confer_v declare_v that_o the_o profession_n and_o desire_n of_o all_o for_o the_o advancement_n of_o piety_n and_o true_a godliness_n be_v the_o same_o their_o profession_n of_o zeal_n for_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n the_o same_o of_o affection_n and_o duty_n to_o we_o the_o same_o they_o all_o approve_v episcopacy_n they_o all_o approve_v a_o set_a form_n of_o liturgy_n and_o they_o all_o disprove_v and_o dislike_v the_o sin_n of_o sacrilege_n and_o the_o alienation_n of_o the_o revenue_n of_o the_o church_n and_o if_o upon_o these_o excellent_a foundation_n in_o submission_n to_o which_o there_o be_v such_o a_o harmony_n of_o affection_n any_o superstructure_n shall_v be_v raise_v to_o the_o shake_v same_o pag._n 8._o of_o the_o same_o those_o foundation_n and_o to_o the_o contract_n and_o lessen_v the_o bless_a gift_n of_o charity_n which_o be_v a_o vital_a part_n of_o christian_a religion_n we_o shall_v think_v ourselves_o very_o unfortunate_a and_o even_o suspect_v that_o we_o be_v defective_a in_o that_o administration_n of_o government_n with_o which_o god_n have_v entrust_v we_o now_o we_o do_v not_o think_v that_o reverence_n which_o we_o have_v while_n 26._o no_o reverence_n for_o the_o church_n of_o england_n lessen_v by_o dispense_n with_o some_o ceremony_n in_o it_o for_o a_o while_n for_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o the_o least_o degree_n diminish_v by_o our_o condescension_n not_o peremptory_o to_o insist_v on_o some_o particular_n of_o ceremony_n which_o however_o introduce_v by_o the_o piety_n and_o devotion_n and_o order_n of_o former_a time_n may_v not_o be_v so_o agreeable_a to_o the_o then_o present_a but_o may_v even_o lessen_v that_o piety_n and_o devotion_n for_o the_o improvement_n whereof_o they_o may_v happy_o be_v first_o introduce_v and_o consequent_o may_v well_o be_v dispense_v with_o and_o we_o hope_v this_o charitable_a compliance_n of_o we_o will_v dispose_v the_o mind_n of_o all_o man_n to_o a_o cheerful_a submission_n to_o that_o authority_n the_o preservation_n whereof_o be_v so_o necessary_a for_o the_o unity_n and_o religion_n 27._o the_o support_n of_o episcopacy_n the_o best_a support_n of_o religion_n peace_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o they_o will_v 9_o pag._n 9_o acknowledge_v the_o support_n of_o the_o episcopal_a authority_n to_o be_v the_o best_a support_n of_o religion_n by_o be_v the_o mean_n to_o contain_v the_o mind_n of_o man_n within_o the_o rule_n of_o government_n if_o we_o have_v the_o command_n of_o as_o many_o tongue_n as_o his_o majesty_n ceremony_n 28._o his_o majesty_n can_v be_v sufficient_o thank_v for_o his_o dispense_n with_o some_o ceremony_n have_v of_o heart_n we_o can_v
and_o in_o time_n some_o prevalent_a sect_n will_v at_o last_o contend_v for_o a_o establishment_n which_o for_o aught_o can_v be_v foresee_v may_v end_v in_o popery_n it_o be_v a_o thing_n altogether_o without_o precedent_n and_o will_v take_v away_o all_o mean_n of_o convict_a recusant_n and_o be_v inconsistent_a with_o the_o method_n and_o proceed_n of_o the_o law_n of_o england_n last_o it_o be_v humble_o conceive_v that_o the_o indulgence_n propose_v will_v be_v so_o far_o from_o tend_v to_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o kingdom_n that_o it_o be_v rather_o likely_a to_o occasion_v great_a disturbance_n and_o on_o the_o contrary_a the_o assert_v of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o religion_n establish_v according_a to_o the_o act_n of_o uniformity_n be_v the_o most_o probable_a mean_n to_o produce_v a_o settle_a peace_n and_o obedience_n throughout_o your_o kingdom_n because_o the_o variety_n of_o profession_n in_o religion_n when_o open_o indulge_v do_v direct_o distinguish_v man_n into_o party_n and_o withal_o give_v they_o opportunity_n to_o count_v their_o number_n which_o consider_v the_o animosity_n that_o out_o of_o a_o religious_a pride_n will_v be_v keep_v on_o foot_n by_o the_o several_a faction_n do_v tend_v direct_o and_o inevitable_o to_o open_a disturbance_n nor_o can_v your_o majesty_n have_v any_o security_n that_o the_o doctrine_n or_o worship_n of_o the_o several_a faction_n which_o be_v all_o govern_v by_o a_o several_a rule_n shall_v be_v consistent_a with_o the_o peace_n of_o your_o kingdom_n these_o reason_n be_v too_o powerful_a for_o his_o majesty_n not_o to_o be_v too_o 65._o these_o reason_n o're-powred_n the_o king_n so_o that_o he_o yield_v to_o they_o and_o he_o hope_v that_o the_o true_o religious_a and_o peaceable_a will_v soon_o do_v so_o too_o overcome_v by_o they_o and_o therefore_o he_o yield_v to_o their_o force_n and_o prevalency_n and_o doubt_v not_o but_o in_o a_o little_a while_n the_o true_o religious_a and_o the_o peaceable_a will_v likewise_o be_v bring_v over_o to_o a_o submissive_a acquiescence_n and_o a_o dutiful_a compliance_n with_o they_o and_o that_o their_o mind_n will_v be_v better_o compose_v and_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n establish_v and_o though_o he_o be_v very_o persuade_v that_o the_o great_a piety_n and_o devotion_n the_o moderation_n wisdom_n charity_n and_o hospitality_n of_o the_o bishop_n will_v in_o a_o short_a time_n recover_v the_o weak_a and_o the_o mislead_v to_o government_n 66._o and_o that_o by_o the_o bishop_n care_n and_o example_n the_o weak_a will_v be_v bring_v over_o to_o their_o primitive_a temper_n of_o obedience_n to_o law_n and_o government_n their_o primitive_a temper_n of_o a_o cheerful_a obedience_n and_o submission_n to_o law_n and_o government_n and_o so_o to_o be_v the_o best_a neighbour_n and_o the_o best_a friend_n and_o the_o best_a subject_n of_o the_o world_n yet_o be_v he_o not_o also_o insensible_a that_o the_o forwardness_n and_o pride_n of_o some_o may_v not_o be_v yet_o enough_o subdue_v the_o humour_n and_o spirit_n of_o such_o man_n be_v too_o rough_a and_o boisterous_a and_o therefore_o be_v willing_a that_o there_o shall_v be_v prepare_v sharp_a law_n and_o penalty_n to_o contend_v with_o those_o refractory_a person_n and_o to_o break_v that_o stuborness_n which_o will_v not_o bend_v to_o gentle_a law_n 67._o that_o those_o who_o will_v not_o must_v feel_v the_o weight_n of_o sharp_a law_n application_n and_o it_o be_v great_a reason_n that_o they_o upon_o who_o clemency_n can_v prevail_v shall_v feel_v that_o severity_n they_o have_v provoke_v but_o still_o the_o execution_n of_o those_o sharp_a law_n depend_v upon_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o king_n who_o be_v the_o most_o discern_a himself_o 68_o but_o yet_o the_o execution_n of_o those_o law_n depend_v on_o the_o king_n who_o be_v merciful_a and_o of_o a_o tender_a conscience_n himself_o generous_a and_o merciful_a prince_n in_o the_o world_n and_o of_o so_o excellent_a a_o nature_n and_o so_o tender_a a_o conscience_n himself_o that_o he_o have_v the_o high_a compassion_n for_o all_o error_n of_o that_o kind_n as_o before_o be_v say_v but_o his_o constant_a zeal_n for_o the_o church_n have_v be_v visible_a throughout_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o his_o reign_n scarce_o can_v he_o admit_v a_o speech_n to_o come_v from_o he_o unless_o it_o have_v in_o it_o some_o thing_n 69._o his_o constant_a zeal_n the_o church_n go_v above_o all_o thing_n earnest_a request_n that_o his_o parliament_n will_v take_v care_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n that_o they_o will_v see_v to_o secure_v the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o to_o keep_v that_o up_o in_o all_o its_o just_a and_o ancient_a right_n this_o zeal_n of_o he_o for_o the_o church_n after_o the_o dreadful_a conflagration_n of_o his_o great_a city_n of_o london_n make_v the_o king_n so_o earnest_a with_o they_o soon_o after_o to_o get_v up_o some_o of_o their_o church_n re-edify_v that_o so_o the_o service_n of_o god_n in_o the_o public_a worship_n may_v be_v perform_v and_o that_o we_o may_v there_o mourn_v for_o those_o our_o grievous_a sin_n which_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o god_n so_o heavy_a a_o judgement_n upon_o we_o these_o be_v his_o word_n we_o do_v hearty_o recommend_v it_o to_o the_o charity_n and_o magnanimity_n of_o all_o well-disposed_a person_n in_o 70._o how_o instant_a the_o king_n be_v to_o have_v church_n rebuilt_a after_o the_o fire_n of_o london_n that_o some_o may_v have_v public_a place_n to_o worship_n and_o serve_v god_n in_o and_o we_o hearty_o pray_v unto_o almighty_a god_n that_o he_o will_v infuse_v into_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n speedy_o to_o endeavour_v by_o degree_n to_o re-edify_v some_o of_o those_o many_o church_n which_o in_o this_o lamentable_a fire_n have_v be_v burn_v down_o and_o deface_v that_o so_o man_n may_v have_v those_o public_a place_n of_o god_n worship_n to_o resort_v to_o to_o humble_v themselves_o together_o before_o he_o upon_o this_o his_o heavy_a dipsleasure_n and_o join_v in_o their_o devotion_n for_o his_o future_a mercy_n &_o blessing_n upon_o we_o &_o as_o soon_o as_o we_o shall_v be_v inform_v too_o 71._o the_o king_n invite_v his_o people_n to_o it_o by_o the_o promise_n not_o only_o of_o his_o assistance_n and_o direction_n but_o of_o his_o bounty_n too_o any_o readiness_n to_o begin_v such_o a_o good_a work_n we_o shall_v not_o only_o give_v our_o assistance_n and_o direction_n for_o the_o model_n of_o it_o and_o free_v it_o from_o building_n at_o so_o near_o a_o distance_n but_o shall_v encourage_v it_o by_o our_o own_o bounty_n and_o all_o other_o way_n we_o shall_v be_v desire_v be_v not_o this_o sufficient_o expressive_a of_o his_o zeal_n for_o uphold_v the_o true_a religion_n what_o after_o this_o astonish_a judgement_n of_o fire_n upon_o the_o metropolitan_a city_n of_o this_o kingdom_n be_v the_o king_n first_o care_n aught_o to_o have_v be_v that_o of_o we_o all_o to_o endeavour_v to_o have_v god_n worship_v in_o his_o sanctuary_n for_o this_o make_v up_o the_o beauty_n of_o holiness_n and_o declare_v our_o great_a desire_n for_o what_o we_o all_o do_v at_o least_o outward_o profess_v to_o believe_v the_o communion_n of_o saint_n nor_o do_v his_o majesty_n rest_n here_o his_o zeal_n for_o the_o church_n be_v his_o zeal_n for_o the_o service_n of_o it_o and_o he_o be_v resolve_v that_o nothing_o just_o belong_v to_o it_o shall_v be_v lose_v say_v he_o our_o care_n and_o endeavour_n for_o the_o preservation_n church_n 72._o his_o majesty_n have_v all_o along_o shewid_v his_o care_n to_o preserve_v the_o right_n and_o interest_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o right_n and_o interest_n 4._o his_o majesty_n declaration_n to_o all_o his_o love_a subject_n march_n 15._o 1671._o pag._n 3._o 4._o of_o the_o church_n have_v be_v sufficient_o manifest_v to_o the_o world_n by_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o our_o government_n since_o our_o happy_a restauration_n and_o by_o the_o many_o and_o frequent_a way_n of_o coercion_n that_o we_o have_v use_v for_o reduce_v all_o err_a or_o dissent_v person_n and_o for_o compose_v the_o unhappy_a difference_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n which_o we_o find_v among_o our_o subject_n upon_o our_o return_n but_o it_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o sad_a experience_n of_o twelve_o year_n that_o there_o be_v very_o little_a parliament_n 73._o by_o the_o way_n the_o supreme_a power_n in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n be_v not_o only_o inherent_a in_o the_o king_n but_o be_v recognise_v so_o by_o divers_a act_n of_o parliament_n fruit_n of_o all_o those_o forcible_a course_n we_o think_v ourselves_o oblige_v to_o make_v use_n of_o that_o supreme_a power_n in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n which_o be_v not_o only_o inherent_a in_o we_o but_o have_v be_v declare_v and_o recognize_v to_o be_v so_o by_o several_a statute_n and_o act_n of_o parliament_n and_o
i_o in_o it_o i_o have_v transmit_v the_o book_n of_o common_a prayer_n with_o those_o alteration_n and_o addition_n which_o have_v be_v present_v to_o i_o by_o the_o convocation_n to_o the_o house_n of_o peer_n with_o my_o approbation_n that_o the_o act_n of_o uniformity_n may_v relate_v to_o it_o so_o that_o i_o presume_v it_o will_v be_v short_o dispatch_v there_o and_o precipitation_n 89._o it_o require_v great_a prudence_n and_o discretion_n no_o passion_n and_o precipitation_n when_o we_o have_v do_v all_o we_o can_v the_o well-setling_a that_o affair_n will_v require_v great_a prudence_n and_o discretion_n and_o the_o absence_n of_o all_o passion_n and_o precipitation_n you_o see_v how_o his_o majesty_n promise_v that_o he_o will_v give_v up_o all_o his_o endeavour_n to_o compose_v the_o unhappy_a difference_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o to_o restore_v the_o languish_v church_n to_o peace_n unity_n and_o order_n constantine_n himself_o hardly_o spend_v so_o much_o of_o order_n 90._o how_o mighty_o his_o majesty_n have_v lay_v out_o himself_o to_o restore_v the_o church_n to_o peace_n unity_n and_o order_n his_o own_o time_n in_o private_a and_o public_a conference_n to_o that_o purpose_n his_o majesty_n 8._o lord_n chancellor_n speech_n to_o both_o house_n of_o parliament_n on_o saturday_n decemb._n 29_o 1660._o the_o day_n of_o their_o dissolution_n pag._n 8._o in_o private_a confer_v with_o the_o learned_a man_n and_o hear_v all_o that_o can_v be_v say_v upon_o several_a opinion_n and_o interest_n apart_o and_o then_o in_o the_o presence_n it_o 91._o constantine_n himself_o scarce_o spend_v so_o much_o time_n about_o it_o of_o both_o party_n himself_o moderate_v in_o the_o debate_n and_o less_o care_n and_o diligence_n and_o authority_n will_v not_o have_v do_v the_o work_n and_o if_o after_o all_o this_o his_o majesty_n do_v not_o reap_v law_n 93._o if_o after_o all_o some_o will_v keep_v up_o old_a breach_n they_o must_v be_v reduce_v by_o law_n to_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o law_n the_o full_a harvest_n he_o expect_v from_o those_o condescension_n if_o some_o man_n by_o their_o write_n and_o by_o their_o preach_n endeavour_v to_o continue_v the_o old_a breach_n etc._n etc._n i_o shall_v say_v no_o more_o than_o that_o i_o hope_v their_o want_n of_o modesty_n and_o obedience_n will_v cause_v they_o to_o be_v disclaim_v by_o all_o pious_a and_o peaceable_a man_n who_o can_v but_o be_v well_o content_v to_o see_v they_o reduce_v by_o law_n to_o the_o obedience_n they_o owe_v to_o law_n on_o tuesday_n april_n 5._o 1664._o as_o if_o his_o parliament_n be_v somewhat_o doubtful_a of_o it_o the_o king_n when_o he_o come_v then_o to_o give_v his_o royal_a assent_n to_o two_o bill_n break_v out_o into_o these_o word_n to_o they_o i_o do_v assure_v you_o upon_o my_o word_n and_o i_o pray_v believe_v it_o 9●_n the_o king_n have_v no_o other_o thought_n or_o design_n in_o his_o heart_n but_o to_o support_v the_o religion_n establish_v and_o make_v we_o happy_a by_o it_o i_o that_o i_o have_v no_o other_o thought_n or_o design_n in_o my_o heart_n but_o to_o make_v you_o all_o happy_a in_o the_o support_n of_o the_o religion_n and_o law_n establish_v pag._n 4._o the_o late_a king_n lose_v his_o life_n in_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o reform_a religion_n and_o his_o present_a majesty_n who_o god_n almighty_a long_o continue_v among_o we_o have_v manifest_v his_o affection_n to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o by_o law_n establish_v in_o despite_n of_o all_o calumny_n and_o through_o extreme_a difficulty_n with_o the_o high_a act_n of_o solemnity_n imaginable_a when_o his_o majesty_n meet_v his_o both_o house_n of_o parliament_n in_o 67._o how_o instant_a be_v he_o to_o have_v they_o take_v it_o into_o their_o considerate_a thought_n how_o to_o settle_v religion_n more_o to_o the_o quiet_v of_o his_o people_n mind_n and_o 4._o his_o majesty_n speech_n to_o both_o house_n monday_n 10_o feb._n 1667._o pag._n 4._o for_o the_o establishment_n of_o unity_n and_o concord_n among_o they_o say_v he_o one_o thing_n more_o i_o hold_v myself_o oblige_v to_o recommend_v unto_o you_o at_o this_o government_n 94._o and_o therefore_o remind_v his_o parliament_n that_o they_o will_v think_v of_o some_o course_n to_o beget_v a_o better_a union_n among_o his_o protestant_a subject_n as_o be_v the_o best_a way_n to_o support_v the_o government_n present_a which_o be_v that_o you_o will_v serious_o think_v of_o some_o course_n to_o beget_v a_o better_a union_n and_o composure_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o my_o protestant_a subject_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n whereby_o they_o may_v be_v induce_v not_o only_o to_o submit_v quiet_o to_o the_o government_n but_o also_o cheerful_o give_v their_o assistance_n to_o the_o support_n of_o it_o when_o the_o king_n send_v his_o grace_n the_o then_o earl_n of_o lauderdail_n his_o majesty_n high_a commissioner_n for_o the_o parliament_n of_o scotland_n you_o shall_v hear_v what_o he_o say_v to_o they_o concern_v his_o majesty_n scotland_n 95._o the_o king_n constant_a and_o unalterable_a zeal_n to_o maintain_v and_o defend_v the_o true_a reform_a protestant_a religion_n in_o scotland_n resolution_n to_o maintain_v the_o true_a protestant_a religion_n there_o it_o be_v by_o command_n from_o his_o royal_a master_n to_o say_v in_o his_o name_n at_o the_o open_n 4._o earl_n of_o lauderdail_n be_v speech_n to_o the_o parliament_n of_o scotland_n oct._n 19_o 1669._o pag._n 3._o 4._o of_o that_o his_o parlirment_n and_o first_o say_v he_o i_o be_o to_o assure_v you_o of_o his_o majesty_n constant_a and_o unalterable_a zeal_n for_o maintain_v and_o defend_v the_o true_a reform_a protestant_a religion_n in_o this_o monarchy_n 96._o that_o ●e_n will_v maintain_v and_o defend_v the_o autient_a government_n of_o it_o be_v most_o suitable_a to_o monarchy_n his_o kingdom_n for_o which_o he_o will_v constant_o lay_v out_o his_o whole_a power_n and_o authority_n as_o also_o for_o discourage_v and_o punish_v all_o atheism_n and_o prophanity_n and_o all_o that_o be_v contrary_a to_o true_a religion_n and_o godliness_n i_o be_o further_a particular_o command_v to_o assure_v you_o that_o with_o no_o less_o zeal_n and_o constancy_n he_o will_v maintain_v and_o defend_v the_o ancient_a government_n by_o arch-bishop_n apostolic_a 97._o episcopal_a government_n the_o most_o primitive_a and_o apostolic_a and_o bishop_n as_o now_o it_o be_v happy_o settle_v as_o a_o sure_a fence_n for_o the_o true_a refromed_a protestant_a religion_n a_o government_n most_o suitable_a to_o monarchy_n and_o well_o may_v i_o call_v it_o ancient_n for_o whoever_o function_n 98._o the_o king_n will_v refend_v the_o person_n of_o the_o archbishop_n &_o bishop_n &_o all_o the_o orthodox_n clergy_n in_o their_o function_n will_v look_v into_o antiquity_n shall_v find_v episcopal_a government_n have_v continue_v in_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n both_o east_n and_o west_n even_o from_o the_o most_o primitive_a and_o apostolic_a time_n and_o a_o little_a after_o in_o the_o say_v 4_o pag._n after_o he_o have_v just_o touch_v upon_o the_o sad_a calamity_n and_o confusion_n of_o the_o late_a time_n he_o say_v far_a in_o his_o majesty_n name_n and_o by_o his_o special_a command_n i_o do_v assure_v you_o he_o will_v employ_v his_o utmost_a power_n in_o the_o maintenance_n schism_n 99_o will_v not_o endure_v those_o numerous_a conventicle_n that_o tend_v to_o sedition_n and_o schism_n of_o that_o government_n and_o will_v protect_v the_o person_n of_o my_o lord_n the_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n and_o of_o the_o loyal_a orthodox_n and_o peaceable_a clergy_n in_o the_o exercise_n of_o their_o function_n he_o will_v not_o endure_v those_o numerous_a and_o unlawful_a conventicle_n favour_n 100_o the_o king_n of_o late_a have_v set_v up_o some_o that_o be_v peaceable_a man_n in_o vacant_a church_n though_o they_o come_v not_o up_o to_o the_o rule_v establish_v they_o shall_v therefore_o carry_v themselves_o worthy_a of_o that_o high_a favour_n which_o tend_v to_o sedition_n and_o schism_n which_o have_v be_v too_o frequent_a in_o some_o few_o shire_n of_o this_o kingdom_n good_a law_n have_v be_v make_v and_o in_o prosecution_n of_o those_o law_n the_o lord_n of_o his_o majesty_n privy_a council_n have_v show_v their_o care_n for_o suppress_v those_o seditious_a assembly_n yea_o and_o of_o late_a his_o majesty_n have_v gracious_o indulge_v the_o plant_n of_o some_o who_o be_v esteen_v peaceable_a man_n in_o vacant_a church_n though_o they_o come_v not_o up_o to_o the_o rule_v establish_v it_o will_v be_v expect_v that_o they_o walk_v worthy_a of_o so_o great_a a_o favour_n but_o if_o after_o this_o removal_n of_o the_o very_a pretence_n of_o unlawful_a conventicle_n any_o factious_a people_n shall_v in_o contempt_n of_o his_o majesty_n law_n yea_o punishment_n 101._o but_o if_o any_o factious_a people_n in_o contempt_n of_o his_o
majesty_n law_n shall_v afterward_o assemble_v they_o must_v ●o_o bring_v to_o condign_a punishment_n and_o of_o his_o indulgence_n also_o seditious_o assemble_v themselves_o under_o pretence_n of_o religious_a worship_n his_o majesty_n do_v require_v his_o parliament_n and_o all_o in_o authority_n under_o he_o vigorous_o to_o suppress_v such_o meeting_n and_o to_o bring_v the_o pretend_a preacher_n and_o ringleader_n of_o such_o unlawful_a assembly_n to_o condign_a and_o exemplary_a punishment_n again_o his_o majesty_n commissioner_n speech_n to_o the_o parliament_n of_o scotland_n that_o be_v meet_v at_o edinburgh_n bishop_n 102._o the_o king_n be_v unalterable_a in_o his_o zeal_n to_o maintain_v the_o true_a reform_a protestant_a religion_n and_o government_n by_o arch-bishop_n and_o bishop_n mention_v religion_n have_v these_o word_n i_o 7._o july_n 28._o 70._o p._n 5_o 6_o 7._o need_v not_o repeat_v the_o assurance_n of_o his_o majesty_n be_v constant_a and_o unalterable_a zeal_n for_o maintain_v and_o defend_v the_o true_a reform_a protestant_a religion_n in_o this_o his_o kingdom_n and_o that_o with_o no_o less_o zeal_n and_o constancy_n he_o will_v maintain_v the_o ancient_a government_n by_o arch-bishop_n and_o bishop_n now_o happy_o restore_v and_o establish_v here_o for_o in_o schism_n 203._o and_o will_v not_o endure_v those_o numerous_a conventicle_n that_o tend_v to_o sedition_n and_o schism_n all_o the_o exercise_n of_o his_o royal_a authority_n he_o do_v daily_o give_v full_a and_o undeniable_a testimony_n thereof_o at_o the_o open_n of_o the_o first_o session_n of_o this_o parliament_n i_o tell_v you_o in_o his_o majesty_n name_n that_o he_o will_v not_o endure_v those_o numerous_a and_o unlawful_a conventicle_n that_o tend_v to_o sedition_n punishment_n 104._o but_o will_v have_v they_o suppress_v and_o the_o most_o guilty_a bring_v to_o punishment_n and_o schism_n which_o have_v be_v too_o frequent_a in_o some_o shire_n of_o this_o kingdom_n and_o the_o king_n do_v then_o require_v you_o and_o all_o in_o authority_n under_o he_o vigorous_o to_o suppress_v such_o meeting_n and_o to_o bring_v the_o most_o guilty_a to_o condign_a punishment_n in_o prosecution_n of_o which_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o privy_a council_n religion_n 105._o field_n conventicle_n look_v more_o like_a rendezvouze_n for_o rebellion_n than_o any_o thing_n for_o religion_n have_v do_v their_o duty_n careful_o though_o not_o with_o that_o success_n which_o they_o desire_v for_o his_o majesty_n have_v be_v inform_v that_o this_o summer_n divers_a seditious_a and_o numerous_a conventicle_n have_v be_v keep_v even_o in_o the_o open_a field_n which_o look_v like_a endeavour_n to_o rendezvous_n for_o rebellion_n than_o any_o pretence_n assemble_v 106._o because_o it_o be_v in_o contempt_n of_o the_o king_n authority_n and_o of_o the_o parliament_n which_o they_o know_v so_o soon_o will_v assemble_v of_o religious_a worship_n and_o that_o in_o high_a contempt_n of_o his_o majesty_n authority_n and_o of_o this_o parliament_n which_o they_o well-knew_a be_v so_o soon_o to_o assemble_v yea_o such_o have_v be_v the_o insolent_a barbarity_n of_o that_o incorrigible_a sort_n of_o nonconformist_n that_o in_o some_o place_n the_o house_n of_o orthodox_n and_o peaceable_a minister_n have_v be_v rob_v their_o person_n and_o family_n wound_v and_o they_o threaten_v to_o be_v murder_v church_n 107._o and_o some_o of_o those_o nonconformist_n rob_v the_o conformable_a minister_n house_n wound_v the_o parson_n and_o threaten_v to_o kill_v they_o if_o they_o stay_v in_o their_o church_n if_o they_o stay_v at_o their_o church_n therefore_o his_o majesty_n do_v most_o serious_o recommend_v they_o 108._o therefore_o good_a reason_n why_o the_o king_n recommend_v they_o to_o make_v good_a law_n and_o vigorous_o to_o prosecute_v they_o it_o to_o your_o special_a care_n by_o good_a law_n and_o vigorous_a prosecution_n of_o they_o to_o curb_v punish_v and_o prevent_v those_o seditious_a conventicle_n to_o cure_v the_o withdraw_n of_o protestant_n from_o their_o paroch_n church_n and_o the_o ordinance_n there_o which_o be_v the_o occasion_n of_o those_o conventicle_n and_o can_v schism_n 109._o for_o this_o can_v be_v conscience_n but_o design_n to_o perpetuate_v faction_n and_o schism_n be_v pretend_v for_o conscience_n but_o must_v be_v esteem_v only_o out_o of_o design_n to_o perpetuate_v faction_n and_o schism_n see_v the_o form_n of_o worship_n here_o be_v the_o same_o which_o have_v be_v since_o the_o reformation_n as_o also_o to_o punish_v exemplar_o those_o barbarous_a robbery_n and_o assassinate_v commit_v against_o honest_a and_o peaceable_a minister_n and_o general_o to_o provide_v what_o you_o shall_v think_v necessary_a for_o continue_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o kingdom_n the_o work_n will_v be_v easy_a and_o i_o doubt_v not_o your_o care_n in_o it_o the_o kingdom_n general_o be_v loyal_a peaceable_a and_o dutiful_a it_o be_v but_o dutiful_a 110._o the_o kingdom_n general_o be_v loyal_a peaceable_n and_o dutiful_a a_o small_a part_n of_o it_o which_o be_v taint_v with_o such_o principle_n and_o practice_n 7._o pag._n 7._o and_o again_o further_o in_o the_o year_n 1672._o his_o majesty_n be_v high_a commissioner_n for_o his_o kingdom_n of_o scotland_n at_o the_o open_n of_o that_o session_n of_o parliament_n continue_v the_o same_o language_n to_o they_o and_o assure_v they_o his_o majesty_n be_v resolution_n be_v not_o in_o the_o least_o alter_v say_v he_o i_o be_o particular_o command_v to_o renew_v again_o to_o you_o 12._o his_o grace_n the_o duke_n of_o lauderdail_n be_v speech_n june_n 12._o 1672._o to_o the_o parliament_n of_o scotland_n pag._n 12._o church_n 111._o the_o king_n resolution_n continue_v the_o same_o still_o for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n by_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n and_o for_o suppress_v of_o conventicle_n prevent_v the_o growth_n of_o schism_n and_o secure_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n the_o assurance_n of_o his_o majesty_n most_o constant_a continuance_n in_o his_o unalterable_a resolution_n to_o maintain_v the_o true_a reform_a protestant_a religion_n and_o the_o government_n of_o this_o church_n by_o arch-bishop_n and_o bishop_n whatever_o seditious_a and_o disaffect_v person_n may_v suggest_v to_o the_o contrary_a and_o i_o be_o full_o empower_v to_o all_o such_o further_a act_n as_o you_o shall_v judge_v convenient_a for_o the_o quiet_v the_o mind_n of_o peaceable_a people_n and_o for_o curb_v and_o punish_v seditious_a conventicle_n for_o prevent_v the_o increase_n of_o schism_n and_o by_o all_o good_a mean_n secure_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n by_o this_o you_o may_v see_v that_o his_o majesty_n be_v not_o only_o resolve_v to_o settle_v episcopacy_n in_o this_o his_o kingdom_n but_o his_o pious_a intention_n be_v all_o along_o visible_a firm_o to_o establish_v it_o throughout_o all_o his_o dominion_n but_o to_o return_v to_o ourselves_o here_o of_o england_n when_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o present_v the_o bill_n to_o his_o majesty_n to_o repeal_v that_o law_n which_o be_v make_v in_o 17_o car._n whereby_o the_o bishop_n be_v exclude_v the_o house_n how_o great_a be_v the_o king_n joy_n and_o thankfulness_n to_o they_o at_o the_o receipt_n of_o it_o you_o shall_v hear_v both_o their_o speech_n of_o this_o matter_n and_o first_o to_o begin_v with_o the_o speaker_n when_o he_o present_v the_o bill_n say_v he_o your_o majesty_n be_v royal_a grandfather_n be_v often_o wont_a 5._o sir_n edward_n turner_n be_v speech_n deliver_v on_o tuesday_n july_n 30._o 1661._o at_o their_o adjournment_n pag._n 4_o 5._o to_o say_v no_o bishop_n no_o king_n we_o find_v confusion_n 112._o no_o bishop_n no_o king_n find_v true_a in_o the_o late_a time_n of_o confusion_n his_o word_n true_a for_o after_o they_o be_v put_v out_o the_o fever_n still_o increase_n in_o another_o fit_a the_o temporal_a lord_n follow_v and_o then_o the_o king_n himself_o nor_o do_v the_o humour_n rest_n there_o but_o in_o the_o round_a the_o house_n of_o commons_o be_v first_o garble_v and_o then_o turn_v out_o of_o their_o door_n it_o be_v no_o wonder_n when_o a_o sword_n be_v put_v into_o a_o mad_a man_n hand_n to_o see_v he_o cut_v off_o limb_n by_o limb_n and_o then_o to_o kill_v himself_o when_o there_o be_v a_o great_a breach_n of_o the_o sea_n upon_o the_o low_a ground_n by_o the_o violence_n of_o the_o torrent_n the_o river_n of_o sweet_a water_n be_v often_o turn_v aside_o and_o the_o salt_n water_n make_v themselves_o a_o channel_n but_o when_o the_o breach_n be_v make_v up_o good_a husband_n drain_v their_o land_n again_o and_o restore_v the_o ancient_a sewer_n thanks_o be_v to_o god_n the_o flood_n be_v go_v off_o the_o face_n of_o this_o island_n our_o turtle_n dove_n have_v find_v good_a foot_n your_o majesty_n be_v happy_o restore_v to_o the_o government_n the_o temporal_a lord_n and_o commons_o be_v restore_v to_o sit_v in_o parliament_n and_o shall_v the_o church_n alone_o
about_o eight_o month_n after_o you_o shall_v see_v the_o king_n keep_v close_o to_o the_o same_o text_n as_o be_v that_o which_o he_o can_v never_o find_v in_o his_o heart_n to_o forget_v and_o therefore_o he_o may_v very_o well_o begin_v thus_o i_o ihope_o need_v not_o use_v many_o word_n to_o persuade_v you_o that_o i_o be_o steady_a in_o maintain_v all_o the_o profession_n and_o promise_n i_o have_v promise_n 126._o the_o king_n steady_a to_o all_o his_o profession_n and_o promise_n make_v you_o concern_v religion_n 4._o king_n speech_n to_o both_o house_n monday_n octob._n 27._o 73._o pag._n 4._o and_o i_o shall_v be_v very_o ready_a to_o give_v you_o fresh_a instance_n of_o my_o zeal_n for_o it_o 127._o be_v ready_a to_o give_v fresh_a invance_n of_o it_o preserve_v the_o establish_v religion_n and_o law_n as_o often_o as_o any_o occasion_n shall_v require_v by_o this_o you_o can_v but_o take_v notice_n that_o as_o to_o religion_n people_n 128._o his_o majesty_n heart_n with_o those_o of_o his_o people_n his_o majesty_n heart_n be_v with_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o people_n perfect_o with_o their_o heart_n 9_o lord_n chancellor_n speech_n to_o the_o same_o pag._n 9_o receive_v 129._o if_o therefore_o any_o thing_n be_v want_v to_o secure_a religion_n all_o reasonable_a proposal_n shall_v be_v kind_o receive_v and_o therefore_o about_o three_o month_n after_o that_o say_v the_o king_n again_o to_o his_o parliament_n if_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n else_o which_o you_o think_v 4._o king_n speech_n january_n 7._o 73._o pag._n 4._o want_v to_o secure_a religion_n there_o be_v nothing_o which_o you_o shall_v reasonable_o propose_v but_o i_o shall_v be_v ready_a to_o receive_v it_o one_o will_v wonder_v with_o one_o self_n what_o can_v be_v expect_v more_o from_o a_o prince_n to_o be_v say_v than_o such_o a_o hearty_a and_o generous_a declaration_n as_o this_o it_o be_v deliver_v with_o so_o oblige_v and_o so_o satisfactory_a a_o accent_n that_o he_o who_o affection_n be_v not_o raise_v by_o that_o discourse_n he_o who_o can_v acquiesce_v in_o the_o fullness_n of_o this_o 7_o lord_n keeper_n speech_n to_o the_o same_o pag._n 7_o expedient_a 130._o he_o who_o can_v acquiesce_v in_o this_o assurance_n will_v never_o be_v prevail_v upon_o by_o any_o other_o expedient_a assurance_n he_o who_o heart_n be_v not_o establish_v by_o it_o in_o such_o a_o belief_n as_o may_v entire_o dispose_v he_o to_o the_o service_n of_o the_o crown_n will_v hardly_o be_v recover_v to_o a_o better_a disposition_n by_o any_o other_o expedient_a be_v not_o this_o a_o ample_a demonstration_n of_o his_o willingness_n to_o repair_v the_o hedge_n about_o our_o vineyard_n and_o to_o make_v it_o a_o fence_n indeed_o against_o all_o those_o who_o be_v enemy_n to_o the_o plan_n of_o it_o who_o will_v be_v glad_a to_o see_v it_o tread_v 8._o id_fw-la pag._n 8._o down_o or_o root_v up_o and_o study_v how_o to_o sapp_v and_o undermine_v our_o very_a foundation_n the_o king_n call_v his_o parliament_n to_o examine_v and_o concur_v with_o religion_n 131._o the_o king_n call_v his_o parliament_n to_o examine_v and_o to_o concur_v with_o he_o in_o the_o best_a way_n to_o preserve_v the_o protestant_a religion_n he_o in_o the_o best_a expedient_n for_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n 8._o the_o lord_n keeper_n speech_n to_o both_o house_n april_n 13._o 1675._o pag._n 8._o and_o for_o secure_v the_o establishment_n of_o it_o by_o a_o due_a execution_n of_o the_o law_n he_o give_v they_o leave_v to_o study_v and_o contrive_v their_o own_o assurance_n and_o if_o they_o think_v they_o want_v any_o further_a security_n if_o any_o thing_n 132._o and_o will_v be_v persuade_v by_o they_o in_o all_o reasonable_a thing_n thing_n have_v escape_v his_o majesty_n care_n who_o meditate_v nothing_o more_o than_o 10._o the_o lord_n keeper_n speech_n to_o both_o house_n january_n 7._o 73._o pag._n 10._o our_o preservation_n you_o see_v they_o have_v free_a leave_n to_o make_v any_o reasonable_a proposition_n wi●●es_n 133._o this_o sure_o shall_v satisfy_v all_o our_o wi●●es_n and_o his_o gracious_a promise_n that_o he_o will_v receive_v it_o this_o one_o will_v think_v be_v a_o satisfaction_n equal_a to_o all_o our_o wish_n and_o that_o there_o want_v no_o more_o to_o the_o improvement_n of_o this_o happiness_n but_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o ibid._n id_fw-la ibid._n parliament_n to_o use_v these_o advantage_n with_o a_o due_a moderation_n and_o still_o his_o majesty_n seem_v to_o be_v dissatisfy_v with_o himself_o and_o that_o he_o have_v not_o yet_o do_v enough_o for_o the_o interest_n of_o religion_n no_o he_o must_v be_v further_a solicitous_a and_o importunate_a his_o chief_a design_n of_o assemble_v his_o parliament_n be_v again_o to_o refresh_v their_o memory_n with_o it_o and_o as_o he_o think_v it_o can_v never_o be_v too_o much_o in_o his_o thought_n so_o likewise_o it_o can_v never_o be_v too_o often_o repeat_v religion_n 134._o the_o king_n chief_a end_n in_o call_v the_o parliament_n to_o think_v what_o yet_o may_v be_v want_v to_o secure_a religion_n by_o he_o the_o principal_a end_n say_v he_o of_o my_o call_n you_o now_o be_v to_o know_v what_o you_o 4._o his_o majesty_n speech_n april_n 13._o 1675._o pag._n 3_o 4._o think_v may_v be_v yet_o want_v to_o the_o security_n of_o religion_n and_o to_o give_v myself_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o have_v use_v the_o utmost_a of_o my_o endeavour_n it_o 135._o and_o will_v leave_v nothing_o undo_v to_o show_v his_o zeal_n for_o it_o to_o procure_v and_o settle_v a_o right_a and_o last_a understanding_n between_o we_o i_o will_v leave_v nothing_o undo_v that_o may_v show_v the_o world_n my_o zeal_n to_o the_o protestant_a religion_n as_o it_o be_v establish_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n from_o which_o i_o will_v never_o depart_v and_o may_v he_o not_o then_o very_o just_o begin_v his_o next_o speech_n to_o his_o parliament_n after_o this_o manner_n and_o say_v i_o think_v i_o have_v give_v sufficient_a evidence_n to_o the_o world_n that_o i_o have_v not_o property_n 136._o the_o king_n not_o want_v in_o his_o endeavour_n to_o establish_v our_o religion_n and_o our_o property_n be_v want_v on_o my_o part_n in_o my_o endeavour_n to_o procure_v the_o full_a satisfaction_n of_o 3._o king_n speech_n june_n 9_o 1675._o pag._n 3._o all_o my_o subject_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o both_o religion_n and_o property_n i_o have_v not_o only_o invite_v you_o to_o those_o consideration_n at_o our_o first_o meeting_n but_o i_o have_v be_v careful_a through_o this_o whole_a session_n that_o not_o concern_v of_o my_o own_o shall_v divert_v you_o from_o it_o well_o the_o next_o speech_n of_o his_o majesty_n to_o they_o be_v still_o to_o provide_v what_o they_o shall_v think_v fit_v to_o make_v we_o all_o safe_a in_o our_o religion_n and_o particular_o say_v he_o religion_n 137._o it_o be_v his_o particular_a recommendation_n to_o his_o parliament_n to_o secure_v the_o protestant_a religion_n i_o recommend_v to_o you_o whatever_o may_v 4._o wednes_n octo._n 13._o 1675._o the_o king_n speech_n p._n 4._o tend_v to_o the_o security_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n as_o it_o be_v now_o establish_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o that_o you_o can_v but_o plain_o take_v notice_n that_o his_o majesty_n have_v so_o often_o recommend_v to_o his_o parliament_n the_o consideration_n of_o religion_n so_o very_o often_o desire_v they_o to_o assist_v he_o in_o his_o care_n and_o protection_n of_o it_o 6._o lord_n keeper_n speech_n to_o the_o same_o p._n 6._o that_o the_o defender_n of_o the_o faith_n be_v become_v it_o 138._o the_o defender_n of_o the_o faith_n be_v the_o advocate_n for_o it_o the_o advocate_n for_o it_o too_o and_o have_v leave_v all_o those_o without_o excuse_n who_o still_o remain_v under_o any_o kind_n of_o doubt_n or_o fear_n again_o do_v that_o noble_a and_o eloquent_a lord_n thus_o say_v speak_v to_o both_o house_n of_o parliament_n in_o pag._n 8._o and_o 9_o will_v you_o raise_v the_o due_a estimation_n and_o reverence_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o its_o just_a height_n will_v you_o provide_v for_o the_o safety_n and_o establishment_n of_o it_o all_o your_o petition_n of_o this_o kind_n will_v be_v grateful_a to_o the_o king_n and_o you_o may_v with_o ease_n effect_v this_o and_o much_o more_o which_o your_o great_a wisdom_n will_v suggest_v to_o you_o when_o the_o king_n meet_v his_o parliament_n after_o as_o he_o himself_o be_v there_o please_v to_o call_v it_o a_o long_a prorogation_n he_o still_o keep_v up_o the_o same_o language_n to_o they_o as_o you_o have_v hear_v he_o speak_v all_o along_o happy_a 139._o the_o king_n still_o put_v parliament_n in_o mind_n to_o make_v his_o people_n happy_a i_o be_o now_o resolve_v say_v he_o to_o
have_v most_o pious_o desire_v may_v be_v prevent_v and_o so_o the_o peace_n priest_n 2._o because_o of_o the_o resort_v of_o so_o many_o jesuit_n and_o popish_a priest_n both_o in_o church_n and_o state_n may_v be_v insensible_o disturb_v to_o the_o great_a danger_n of_o both_o which_o be_v the_o reason_n of_o both_o the_o house_n of_o parliament_n humble_a suit_n to_o the_o king_n that_o he_o will_v be_v please_v to_o issue_n out_o his_o proclamation_n to_o command_v all_o jesuit_n and_o popish_a departure_n 3._o therefore_o the_o parliament_n desire_v the_o king_n to_o issue_v out_o his_o proclamation_n for_o their_o departure_n priest_n etc._n etc._n to_o depart_v this_o kingdom_n by_o a_o day_n under_o the_o penalty_n of_o the_o law_n to_o be_v inflict_v on_o they_o but_o say_v his_o majesty_n to_o they_o present_o in_o his_o speech_n at_o the_o reception_n of_o that_o petition_n 5._o pag._n 5._o it_o may_v be_v the_o general_a jealousy_n of_o the_o nation_n have_v they_o 4._o his_o majesty_n present_a answer_n to_o they_o make_v this_o address_n necessary_a and_o indeed_o i_o believe_v nothing_o have_v contribute_v more_o to_o that_o jealousy_n than_o my_o own_o confidence_n that_o it_o be_v impossible_a there_o shall_v be_v any_o such_o jealousy_n and_o the_o effect_n of_o that_o confidence_n but_o say_v he_o in_o the_o next_o word_n i_o shall_v give_v you_o satisfaction_n and_o then_o i_o be_o sure_a you_o will_v easy_o satisfy_v and_o compose_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o nation_n answer_v to_o this_o representation_n and_o petition_n he_o return_n 5._o afterward_o his_o more_o deliberate_a return_n 8._o and_o in_o his_o april_n 1._o 1663._o pag._n 7._o 8._o say_v have_v serious_o consider_v it_o and_o have_v make_v some_o reflection_n upon_o himself_o and_o his_o own_o action_n he_o be_v not_o a_o little_a trouble_v that_o his_o lenity_n and_o condescension_n towards_o many_o of_o the_o popish_a persuasion_n which_o be_v but_o natural_a effect_n of_o his_o generosity_n and_o good_a nature_n etc._n etc._n have_v be_v make_v so_o ill_a use_n of_o and_o so_o ill_o deserve_v that_o the_o resort_v of_o jesuit_n and_o priest_n into_o this_o kingdom_n have_v be_v thereby_o increase_v with_o which_o his_o majesty_n be_v and_o have_v long_o be_v high_o offend_v and_o therefore_o his_o majesty_n ready_o concur_v with_o the_o advice_n of_o his_o two_o house_n of_o parliament_n and_o have_v give_v order_n for_o the_o prepare_n and_o issue_v be_v 6._o that_o he_o ready_o concur_v with_o the_o advice_n of_o his_o parliament_n to_o grant_v a_o proclamation_n and_o that_o to_o be_v more_o effectual_a than_o any_o of_o that_o kind_n have_v ever_o be_v out_o such_o a_o proclamation_n as_o be_v desire_v and_o his_o majesty_n will_v take_v far_a care_n that_o the_o same_o shall_v be_v effectual_a at_o least_o to_o a_o great_a degree_n than_o any_o proclamation_n of_o this_o kind_n have_v ever_o be_v and_o his_o majesty_n further_o declare_v and_o assure_v both_o his_o house_n of_o parliament_n and_o all_o his_o love_a subject_n of_o all_o his_o dominion_n that_o as_o his_o affection_n and_o zeal_n for_o popery_n 7._o for_o nothing_o be_v great_a than_o his_o zeal_n for_o the_o protestant_a religion_n and_o to_o hinder_v the_o growth_n of_o popery_n the_o protestant_a religion_n and_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v not_o be_v conceal_v or_o untaken_v notice_n of_o in_o the_o world_n so_o he_o be_v not_o nor_o will_v ever_o be_v so_o solicitous_a for_o the_o settle_v his_o own_o revenue_n or_o provide_v any_o other_o expedient_n for_o the_o peace_n and_o tranquillity_n of_o the_o kingdom_n as_o for_o the_o advancement_n and_o improvement_n of_o the_o religion_n establish_v and_o for_o the_o use_n and_o apply_v all_o proper_a and_o effectual_a kingdom_n 8._o that_o be_v the_o best_a way_n to_o establish_v the_o peace_n etc._n etc._n of_o all_o his_o kingdom_n remedy_n to_o hinder_v the_o growth_n of_o popery_n both_o which_o he_o do_v in_o truth_n look_v upon_o as_o the_o best_a expedient_a to_o establish_v the_o peace_n and_o prosperity_n of_o all_o his_o kingdom_n and_o when_o it_o be_v as_o artificial_o as_o the_o king_n himself_o true_o phrase_n it_o as_o malicious_o divulge_v throughout_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n that_o at_o the_o same_o time_n we_o deny_v a_o fit_a liberty_n to_o those_o other_o 3._o his_o majesty_n declaration_n to_o all_o his_o love_a subject_n december_n 26._o 1662._o pag._n 3._o sect_n of_o our_o subject_n who_o conscience_n will_v not_o allow_v they_o to_o conform_v dissenter_n 9_o the_o malicious_a scandal_n of_o his_o be_v more_o favourabie_n to_o papist_n than_o other_o dissenter_n to_o the_o religion_n establish_v by_o law_n we_o be_v high_o indulgent_a to_o papist_n not_o only_o in_o exempt_n they_o from_o the_o penalty_n of_o the_o law_n but_o even_o to_o such_o a_o degree_n of_o countenance_n and_o encouragement_n as_o may_v even_o endanger_v the_o protestant_a religion_n as_o to_o that_o most_o pernicious_a and_o injurious_a scandal_n so_o artificial_o spread_v &_o foment_v of_o our_o favour_n to_o papist_n say_v time_n 10._o a_o repetition_n of_o the_o same_o detestable_a art_n of_o the_o late_a rebellious_a time_n the_o king_n as_o it_o be_v but_o a_o repetition_n of_o the_o same_o detestable_a art_n by_o which_o all_o the_o 12._o the_o same_o declaration_n pag._n 9_o 10_o 11_o 12._o late_a calamity_n have_v be_v bring_v upon_o this_o kingdom_n in_o the_o time_n of_o our_o royal_a father_n of_o bless_a memory_n who_o though_o the_o most_o pious_a and_o zealous_a protestant_n that_o ever_o reign_v in_o this_o nation_n can_v never_o wash_v off_o the_o stain_v cast_v upon_o he_o by_o that_o malice_n but_o by_o his_o poison_n 11._o and_o therefore_o we_o shall_v all_o be_v prepare_v against_o such_o poison_n martyrdom_n we_o conceive_v our_o subject_n shall_v be_v sufficient_o prepare_v against_o that_o poison_n by_o memory_n of_o those_o disaster_n especial_o since_o nothing_o be_v more_o evident_a than_o that_o the_o wicked_a author_n of_o this_o scandal_n be_v such_o as_o seek_v to_o involve_v all_o good_a protestant_n under_o the_o odious_a name_n of_o papist_n or_o popish_o affect_v yet_o we_o can_v but_o say_v upon_o this_o occasion_n that_o our_o education_n and_o course_n of_o life_n in_o the_o true_a protestant_a religion_n have_v be_v such_o and_o our_o constancy_n in_o the_o profession_n of_o it_o so_o eminent_a in_o our_o most_o desperate_a condition_n abroad_o among_o roman_a catholic_n prince_n offence_n 13._o yet_o the_o education_n of_o the_o king_n in_o the_o protestant_a religion_n have_v be_v such_o that_o shall_v any_o but_o believe_v this_o scandal_n it_o will_v be_v a_o most_o impardonable_a offence_n when_o as_o the_o appearance_n of_o recede_v from_o it_o have_v be_v the_o likely_a way_n in_o all_o humane_a forecast_n to_o have_v procure_v we_o the_o most_o powerful_a assistance_n of_o our_o re-establishment_n that_o shall_v any_o of_o our_o subject_n give_v but_o the_o least_o admission_n of_o that_o scandal_n into_o ☞_o ☞_o their_o belief_n we_o shall_v look_v upon_o it_o as_o the_o most_o impardonable_a offence_n that_o they_o can_v be_v guilty_a of_o towards_o we_o it_o be_v true_a that_o as_o we_o shall_v always_o according_a to_o justice_n retain_v so_o we_o think_v it_o may_v become_v we_o to_o avow_v to_o the_o world_n a_o due_a sense_n we_o have_v of_o the_o great_a part_n of_o our_o roman_a catholic_n he_o 14._o it_o be_v true_a the_o roman_a catholic_n do_v adhere_v to_o the_o king_n his_o father_n with_o their_o life_n and_o fortune_n against_o those_o who_o employ_v both_o against_o he_o of_o this_o kingdom_n have_v deserve_v well_o from_o our_o royal_a father_n of_o bless_a memory_n and_o from_o we_o and_o even_o from_o the_o protestant_a religion_n itself_o in_o adhere_v to_o we_o with_o their_o life_n and_o fortune_n for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o our_o crown_n in_o the_o religion_n establish_v against_o those_o who_o under_o the_o name_n of_o zealous_a protestant_n employ_v both_o fire_n and_o sword_n to_o overthrow_v they_o both_o we_o shall_v with_o as_o much_o freedom_n profess_v unto_o the_o world_n that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o our_o intention_n to_o exclude_v our_o roman_a catholic_n subject_n well_o 15._o therefore_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v exclude_v from_o all_o share_n in_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o act_n of_o indemnity_n who_o have_v demean_v themselves_o well_o who_o have_v so_o demean_v themselves_o from_o all_o share_n in_o the_o benefit_n of_o such_o a_o act_n viz._n the_o act_n of_o indemnity_n as_o in_o pursuance_n of_o our_o promise_n the_o wisdom_n of_o our_o parliament_n shall_v think_v fit_a to_o offer_v unto_o we_o for_o the_o ease_n of_o tender_a conscience_n it_o may_v appear_v no_o less_o than_o injustice_n that_o those_o who_o deserve_v well_o and_o continue_v to_o
do_v so_o shall_v be_v deny_v some_o part_n of_o that_o mercy_n which_o we_o unjust_a 16._o for_o that_o will_v seem_v unjust_a have_v oblige_v ourselves_o to_o afford_v to_o ten_o time_n the_o number_n of_o such_o who_o have_v not_o do_v so_o beside_o such_o be_v the_o capital_a only_o 17._o it_o be_v grievous_a to_o put_v any_o to_o death_n for_o their_o opinion_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n only_o law_n in_o force_n against_o they_o as_o though_o justify_v in_o their_o vigour_n by_o the_o time_n in_o which_o they_o be_v make_v we_o profess_v it_o will_v be_v grievous_a unto_o we_o to_o consent_v to_o the_o execution_n of_o they_o by_o put_v any_o of_o our_o subject_n to_o death_n for_o their_o opinion_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n only_o but_o at_o the_o severe_a 18._o yet_o let_v they_o all_o know_v if_o they_o hope_v for_o toleration_n of_o their_o profession_n etc._n etc._n or_o that_o priest_n shall_v appear_v and_o avow_v themselves_o to_o the_o scandal_n of_o good_a protestant_n and_o of_o the_o law_n we_o will_v be_v severe_a same_o time_n that_o we_o declare_v our_o little_a like_n of_o those_o sanguinary_a one_o and_o our_o gracious_a intention_n already_o express_v to_o such_o of_o our_o roman_a catholic_n subject_n as_o shall_v live_v peaceable_o modest_o and_o without_o scandal_n we_o will_v have_v they_o all_o know_v that_o if_o for_o do_v what_o their_o duty_n &_o loyalty_n oblige_v they_o to_o or_o from_o our_o acknowledgement_n of_o their_o well-deserving_a they_o shall_v have_v the_o presumption_n to_o hope_v for_o a_o toleration_n of_o their_o profession_n or_o a_o take_n away_o either_o those_o mark_n of_o distinction_n or_o of_o our_o displeasure_n which_o in_o a_o well-governed_a kingdom_n ought_v always_o to_o be_v set_v upon_o dissenter_n from_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o state_n or_o to_o obtain_v the_o least_o remission_n in_o the_o strictness_n of_o those_o law_n which_o either_o be_v or_o shall_v be_v make_v to_o hinder_v the_o spread_a of_o their_o doctrine_n to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o the_o true_a protestant_a religion_n or_o that_o upon_o our_o express_v according_a to_o christian_a charity_n our_o dislike_n of_o bloodshed_n for_o religion_n only_o priest_n shall_v take_v the_o boldness_n to_o appear_v and_o avow_v themselves_o to_o the_o offence_n and_o scandal_n of_o good_a protestant_n and_o of_o the_o law_n in_o force_n against_o they_o they_o shall_v quick_o find_v we_o know_v as_o well_o to_o be_v severe_a when_o wisdom_n require_v as_o indulgent_a when_o charity_n and_o sense_n of_o merit_n challenge_v it_o from_o we_o with_o this_o we_o have_v think_v fit_a to_o arm_v our_o good_a subject_n one_o 19_o this_o be_v to_o arm_v the_o good_a subject_n mind_n against_o the_o practice_n of_o our_o ill_a one_o mind_n against_o the_o practice_n of_o our_o ill_a one_o by_o a_o true_a knowledge_n of_o our_o own_o of_o which_o now_o right_o persuade_v we_o make_v no_o question_n but_o that_o whatsoever_o they_o be_v from_o who_o they_o can_v derive_v the_o spread_a or_o soment_v of_o nation_n 20._o that_o those_o who_o foment_n such_o suggestion_n be_v the_o most_o dangerous_a enemy_n of_o the_o crown_n and_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o nation_n any_o of_o those_o wicked_a suggestion_n they_o will_v look_v upon_o they_o with_o detestation_n as_o the_o most_o dangerous_a enemy_n of_o our_o crown_n and_o of_o the_o peace_n and_o happiness_n of_o the_o nation_n i_o think_v it_o can_v not_o be_v too_o tedious_a either_o for_o i_o to_o recite_v or_o for_o you_o to_o hear_v thus_o much_o of_o his_o majesty_n declaration_n upon_o this_o head_n because_o he_o have_v in_o it_o so_o clear_o &_o full_o deliver_v himself_o as_o one_o will_v think_v it_o shall_v be_v to_o the_o general_a if_o i_o may_v not_o say_v eternal_a satisfaction_n of_o all_o his_o love_a and_o dutiful_a subject_n be_v it_o not_o a_o superlative_a expression_n for_o the_o king_n to_o say_v of_o those_o this_o 21._o what_o can_v be_v high_o say_v than_o this_o that_o give_v out_o that_o most_o pernicious_a as_o well_o as_o malicious_a scandal_n of_o his_o favour_n to_o papist_n that_o he_o look_v on_o it_o as_o the_o most_o unpardonable_a offence_n that_o any_o can_v be_v guilty_a of_o towards_o he_o and_o that_o those_o wicked_a asperser_n by_o all_o his_o good_a and_o loyal_a people_n will_v as_o they_o deserve_o aught_o to_o be_v look_v upon_o as_o the_o most_o dangerous_a enemy_n both_o to_o his_o crown_n and_o the_o peace_n and_o welfare_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o whereas_o still_o some_o man_n will_v fain_o possess_v the_o people_n papist_n 22._o never_o any_o prince_n have_v give_v more_o convince_a proof_n to_o the_o contrary_a of_o his_o favour_a papist_n that_o his_o majesty_n be_v a_o favourer_n of_o popery_n though_o never_o any_o prince_n in_o christendom_n have_v give_v more_o convince_a and_o irrefragable_a proof_n of_o the_o contrary_a let_v they_o take_v heed_n and_o consider_v that_o by_o such_o aspersion_n they_o run_v the_o hazard_n of_o a_o praemunire_n upon_o the_o act_n for_o the_o safety_n of_o the_o king_n person_n in_o scandalize_a his_o majesty_n for_o a_o favourer_n of_o popery_n now_o where_o the_o humour_n and_o spirit_n of_o man_n be_v too_o rough_a stubborness_n 23._o where_o man_n humour_n be_v too_o rough_a for_o soft_a indulgence_n shar_n law_n must_v be_v make_v to_o break_v their_o stubborness_n and_o boisterous_a for_o the_o soft_a remedy_n of_o signal_n indulgence_n and_o condescension_n of_o suspension_n of_o the_o rigour_n of_o former_a law_n there_o must_v be_v prepare_v sharp_a law_n and_o penalty_n to_o contend_v with_o those_o refractory_a 16._o lord_n chancellor_n speech_n to_o both_o house_n may_v 19_o 1662._o pag._n 16._o person_n and_o to_o break_v that_o stubbornness_n which_o will_v not_o bend_v to_o gentle_a application_n and_o it_o be_v great_a reason_n that_o they_o upon_o who_o clemency_n can_v prevail_v shall_v seel_v that_o severity_n they_o have_v prcvoke_v i_o pray_v hear_v what_o the_o speaker_n of_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o can_v say_v in_o his_o address_n to_o the_o king_n from_o the_o whole_a house_n they_o be_v there_o present_a above_o 7._o the_o address_n of_o the_o house_n speak_v by_o sir_n edw._n turner_n feb._n 28._o 1662._o pag._n 7._o all_o say_v he_o we_o can_v never_o enough_o remember_v to_o popery_n 24._o the_o speaker_n of_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o acknowledge_v his_o majesty_n most_o solemn_a invitation_n of_o they_o to_o make_v law_n against_o the_o growth_n of_o popery_n the_o honour_n of_o your_o majesty_n piety_n and_o our_o own_o unspeakable_a comfort_n those_o solemn_a and_o most_o indear_v invitation_n of_o we_o your_o majesty_n subject_n to_o prepare_v law_n to_o be_v present_v to_o your_o majesty_n against_o the_o growth_n and_o increase_n of_o popery_n and_o withal_o to_o provide_v more_o law_n against_o licentiousness_n and_o impiety_n at_o the_o same_o time_n declare_v your_o own_o resolution_n for_o maintain_v the_o act_n of_o uniformity_n and_o when_o a_o little_a after_o both_o the_o lord_n and_o commons_o petition_v his_o majesty_n by_o his_o proclamation_n to_o command_v all_o romish_a priest_n and_o jesuit_n etc._n etc._n to_o depart_v this_o kingdom_n by_o a_o day_n at_o the_o reception_n of_o the_o petition_n his_o majesty_n thus_o begin_v his_o speech_n to_o they_o my_o lord_n and_o gentleman_n you_o do_v not_o expect_v that_o i_o shall_v give_v you_o a_o answer_v present_o to_o your_o petition_n yet_o i_o will_v tell_v you_o that_o i_o will_v speedy_o send_v you_o a_o answer_n which_o i_o be_o confident_a will_v be_v to_o your_o satisfaction_n and_o be_v it_o not_o so_o think_v you_o when_o he_o in_o his_o gracious_a answer_n on_o the_o one_a of_o april_n 1663._o tell_v they_o that_o he_o do_v ready_o concur_v with_o their_o advice_n and_o that_o he_o have_v give_v order_n for_o such_o a_o proclamation_n as_o they_o desire_v which_o you_o may_v see_v more_o at_o large_a a_o little_a before_o this_o make_v the_o speaker_n of_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o no_o doubt_n so_o sensible_a that_o he_o can_v not_o be_v keep_v off_o from_o a_o fresh_a mention_n of_o it_o when_o he_o speak_v to_o his_o majesty_n although_o it_o be_v almost_o four_o year_n afterward_o say_v he_o we_o have_v be_v alarm_v from_o all_o part_n of_o the_o kingdom_n &c_n 25._o his_o majesty_n command_v all_o his_o officer_n and_o soldier_n to_o take_v the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o supremacy_n ●d_a and_o priest_n a_o jesuit_n to_o the_o part_n by_o a_o day_n which_o much_o secure_v we_o against_o fear_n &c_n &c_n by_o the_o insolence_n of_o popish_a priest_n and_o jesuit_n who_o by_o their_o great_a number_n and_o bold_a writing_n declare_v to_o all_o the_o world_n they_o be_v in_o expectation_n of_o a_o plentiful_a harvest_n here_o in_o
be_v put_v in_o or_o out_o but_o by_o authority_n of_o parl._n no_o lord-lieutenant_n or_o deputy-lieutenant_n nor_o no_o officer_n in_o the_o navy_n during_o the_o reign_n of_o any_o popish_a successor_n be_v put_v in_o or_o remove_v but_o either_o by_o authority_n in_o parliament_n or_o of_o such_o person_n as_o the_o parliament_n shall_v intrust_v with_o such_o authority_n it_o be_v hard_a to_o invent_v another_o restraint_n to_o be_v put_v upon_o a_o popish_a successor_n consider_v how_o much_o the_o revenue_n of_o the_o successor_n success_n 97._o and_o it_o be_v hard_a to_o invent_v another_o restriant_n upon_o a_o popish_a success_n will_v depend_v upon_o consent_n of_o parliament_n and_o how_o impossible_a it_o be_v to_o raise_v money_n without_o such_o consent_n but_o yet_o if_o any_o thing_n else_o can_v occur_v to_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o parliament_n which_o may_v further_o secure_v religion_n and_o liberty_n against_o a_o popish_a successor_n it_o 98._o and_o if_o a_o parl._n can_v think_v of_o any_o thing_n else_o further_o to_o secure_a religion_n the_o k._n will_v consent_v to_o it_o without_o defeat_v the_o right_n of_o succession_n itself_o his_o majesty_n will_v most_o ready_o consent_v to_o it_o bear_v with_o i_o now_o in_o this_o necessary_a repetition_n which_o you_o have_v at_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o the_o last_o chapter_n thus_o watchful_a be_v the_o safety_n 99_o thus_o watchful_a be_v he_o for_o all_o our_o safety_n king_n for_o all_o your_o safety_n and_o if_o he_o can_v think_v of_o any_o thing_n else_o that_o you_o do_v either_o want_n or_o wish_v to_o make_v you_o happy_a he_o will_v make_v it_o his_o business_n to_o effect_v it_o for_o you_o and_o we_o may_v tell_v those_o desperate_a wretch_n who_o yet_o harbour_n in_o their_o thought_n wicked_a design_n against_o the_o sacred_a person_n of_o the_o king_n in_o order_n to_o the_o compass_v their_o own_o imagination_n that_o god_n almighty_a will_v not_o have_v lead_v he_o through_o enemy_n 100_o and_o certain_o now_o god_n will_v never_o have_v do_v so_o much_o but_o for_o a_o servant_n who_o he_o will_v always_o preserve_v from_o the_o utmost_a malice_n of_o his_o enemy_n so_o many_o wilderness_n of_o affliction_n of_o all_o kind_n conduct_v he_o through_o so_o many_o peril_n by_o sea_n and_o peril_n by_o land_n snatch_v he_o out_o of_o the_o midst_n of_o this_o kingdom_n when_o it_o be_v not_o worthy_a of_o he_o and_o when_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o enemy_n be_v even_o upon_o he_o when_o they_o think_v themselves_o so_o sure_o of_o he_o that_o they_o will_v bid_v so_o cheap_a and_o so_o vile_a a_o price_n for_o he_o he_o will_v not_o in_o that_o article_n have_v so_o cover_v he_o with_o a_o cloud_n that_o he_o travel_v even_o with_o some_o pleasure_n and_o great_a observation_n through_o the_o midst_n of_o his_o 22._o l._n chancellor_n speech_n decemb._n 29._o 1660._o page_n 21_o 22._o enemy_n he_o will_v not_o so_o wonderful_o have_v new-modelled_n that_o army_n so_o inspire_v their_o heart_n and_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o whole_a nation_n with_o a_o honest_a and_o impatient_a longing_n for_o the_o return_n of_o their_o dear_a sovereign_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n have_v so_o exercise_v he_o which_o have_v little_o less_o of_o providence_n in_o it_o than_o the_o other_o with_o those_o unnatural_a or_o at_o least_o unusual_a disrespect_n and_o reproach_n abroad_o that_o he_o may_v have_v a_o harmless_a and_o a_o innocent_a appetite_n to_o his_o own_o country_n and_o return_v to_o his_o own_o people_n with_o a_o full_a value_n and_o the_o whole_a unwasted_a bulk_n of_o his_o affection_n without_o be_v corrupt_v or_o by_o ass_v by_o extraordinary_a foreign_a obligation_n and_o let_v i_o add_v that_o he_o will_v not_o now_o have_v so_o miraculous_o as_o it_o be_v preserve_v he_o from_o the_o many_o late_a most_o wicked_a and_o hellish_a conspiracy_n of_o the_o papist_n god_n almighty_a will_v not_o have_v do_v all_o this_o but_o for_o a_o servant_n who_o he_o will_v always_o preserve_v as_o the_o apple_n of_o his_o own_o eye_n and_o always_o defend_v from_o the_o secret_a machination_n of_o his_o enemy_n people_n 101._o let_v we_o to_o the_o utmost_a than_o labour_n to_o improve_v the_o confidence_n between_o the_o king_n and_o his_o people_n let_v we_o then_o extinguish_v our_o fear_n and_o jealousy_n and_o lay_v out_o our_o utmost_a endeavour_n to_o improve_v the_o confidence_n between_o the_o king_n and_o all_o his_o people_n he_o sufficient_o take_v notice_n that_o the_o malice_n of_o his_o enemy_n have_v be_v very_o active_a in_o sow_v so_o many_o tare_n as_o be_v almost_o enough_o to_o spoil_v that_o harvest_n of_o love_n and_o duty_n which_o his_o majesty_n with_o 102._o he_o find_v he_o have_v enemy_n enough_o to_o grapple_v with_o 19_o lord_n keeper_n speech_n jan._n 7._o 1673_o 4._o pag._n 18._o &_o 19_o may_v just_o expect_v to_o reap_v from_o all_o the_o good_a seed_n which_o he_o himself_o have_v sow_o for_o calumny_n and_o slander_n of_o this_o nature_n be_v like_o comet_n while_n 103._o but_o calumny_n be_v nothing_o after_o a_o while_n in_o the_o air_n they_o may_v seem_v perhaps_o especial_o to_o the_o fearful_a to_o be_v ill_a prognostic_n and_o the_o direct_a forerunner_n of_o mischief_n but_o in_o themselves_o they_o be_v vain_a apparition_n and_o have_v no_o kind_n of_o solidity_n no_o permanence_n or_o duration_n at_o all_o for_o after_o a_o little_a while_o the_o vapour_n spend_v itself_o and_o then_o the_o base_a exhalation_n quick_o fall_v back_o again_o into_o that_o earth_n from_o whence_o it_o come_v let_v not_o the_o whisper_v or_o evil_a surmise_n of_o those_o who_o lie_v in_o government_n 104._o let_v not_o ill_a surmise_n endanger_v the_o state_n of_o the_o government_n wait_n to_o deceive_v make_v any_o man_n the_o unhappy_a occasion_n of_o endanger_v the_o safety_n 19_o lord_n chancellor_n speech_n on_o thursday_n may_v 23._o 1678._o page_n 18._o 19_o of_o the_o government_n by_o mistrust_v it_o but_o let_v the_o world_n now_o see_v that_o our_o zeal_n it_o 105._o but_o let_v the_o world_n see_v our_o zeal_n to_o preserve_v it_o to_o preserve_v the_o government_n be_v the_o same_o it_o be_v when_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o die_v for_o its_o restoration_n let_v we_o labour_n to_o show_v the_o world_n the_o most_o effectual_a signification_n enemy_n 106._o and_o by_o our_o loyalty_n and_o duty_n let_v we_o dsscourage_v our_o enemy_n of_o our_o loyalty_n and_o duty_n that_o we_o be_v able_a to_o express_v for_o nothing_o in_o 15._o lord_n chancellor_n speech_n oct._n 21._o 78._o page_n 15._o the_o world_n can_v more_o discourage_v our_o enemy_n afford_v 107._o then_o shall_v the_o king_n possess_v the_o great_a glory_n that_o of_o reign_v in_o our_o heart_n and_o we_o the_o high_a felicity_n that_o this_o world_n can_v afford_v as_o on_o the_o contrary_a nothing_o do_v or_o can_v so_o ripen_v a_o nation_n for_o destruction_n as_o to_o be_v observe_v to_o distrust_v their_o own_o government_n than_o shall_v the_o king_n be_v possess_v of_o that_o true_a glory_n which_o other_o vain_o pursue_v the_o glory_n of_o reign_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o people_n then_o shall_v the_o people_n be_v possess_v of_o as_o much_o felicity_n as_o this_o world_n be_v capable_a of_o chap._n iii_o of_o liberty_n and_o property_n etc._n etc._n and_o now_o have_v thus_o at_o large_a show_v you_o the_o pious_a proem_n 1._o the_o proem_n zeal_n of_o the_o king_n and_o his_o firm_a resolution_n to_o maintain_v and_o defend_v the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o it_o be_v now_o establish_v by_o law_n in_o all_o its_o right_n and_o privilege_n as_o also_o his_o great_a and_o extraordinary_a care_n to_o suppress_v the_o growth_n of_o popery_n by_o awaken_n all_o his_o law_n against_o the_o papist_n and_o popish_a recusant_n and_o by_o his_o frequent_a declaration_n to_o his_o parliament_n of_o his_o readiness_n to_o concur_v with_o they_o still_o in_o all_o further_a necessary_a bill_n against_o they_o which_o be_v fit_a and_o reasonable_a for_o they_o to_o present_v liberty_n 2._o how_o affectionate_a the_o king_n be_v and_o how_o desirous_a to_o keep_v up_o the_o just_a measure_n of_o our_o liberty_n he_o with_o to_o pass_v into_o law_n i_o present_o imagine_v that_o you_o will_v in_o the_o next_o place_n be_v desirous_a to_o hear_v what_o he_o have_v say_v in_o the_o behalf_n of_o your_o liberty_n and_o property_n i_o be_o sure_a to_o your_o religion_n that_o be_v the_o second_o thing_n in_o all_o your_o thought_n and_o i_o wish_v to_o god_n my_o fear_n may_v be_v groundless_a if_o i_o shall_v tell_v you_o that_o in_o truth_n i_o be_o jealous_a whether_o your_o liberty_n and_o property_n be_v not_o a_o great_a deal_n dear_a to_o most_o of_o you_o than_o your_o religion_n which_o
by_o extend_v our_o mercy_n where_o it_o be_v want_v and_o deserve_v and_o when_o he_o grant_v a_o free_a and_o general_a pardon_n to_o all_o his_o subject_n of_o what_o degree_n or_o quality_n soever_o who_o will_v not_o persevere_v in_o their_o gild_n for_o the_o future_a by_o oppose_v the_o quiet_a and_o happiness_n of_o their_o country_n in_o the_o restoration_n both_o of_o king_n peer_n and_o people_n to_o their_o just_a ancient_a and_o fundamental_a right_n but_o will_v return_v to_o the_o loyalty_n and_o obedience_n of_o good_a subject_n say_v his_o majesty_n let_v all_o our_o subject_n how_o faulty_a soever_o law_n 20._o by_o his_o general_n pardon_v no_o crime_n shall_v ever_o rise_v in_o judgement_n against_o any_o eito_fw-la endammage_n their_o life_n liberty_n or_o estate_n who_o will_v now_o become_v obedient_a to_o law_n 3_o the_o same_o declaration_n pag._n 2._o &_o 3_o rely_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o a_o king_n solemn_o give_v by_o this_o present_a declaration_n that_o no_o crime_n whatsoever_o commit_v against_o we_o or_o our_o royal_a father_n before_o the_o publication_n of_o this_o shall_v ever_o rise_v in_o judgement_n or_o be_v bring_v in_o question_n against_o any_o of_o they_o to_o the_o least_o endamagement_n of_o they_o either_o in_o their_o life_n liberty_n or_o estate_n nay_o so_o tender_a be_v the_o king_n of_o their_o credit_n that_o he_o go_v on_o or_o as_o far_o forth_o as_o lie_n in_o our_o power_n so_o much_o as_o to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o their_o reputation_n by_o any_o reproach_n or_o it_o 21._o nay_o their_o reputation_n shall_v not_o suffer_v if_o he_o can_v help_v it_o term_n of_o distinction_n from_o the_o rest_n of_o our_o best_a subject_n in_o the_o king_n speech_n to_o his_o parliament_n april_n 5._o 1664._o p._n 4._o he_o thus_o say_v to_o they_o i_o do_v assure_v you_o upon_o my_o word_n and_o i_o believe_v 22._o he_o have_v no_o other_o thought_n but_o to_o make_v we_o happy_a in_o our_o law_n and_o pray_v so_o to_o be_v believe_v pray_v believe_v i_o that_o i_o have_v no_o other_o thought_n or_o design_n in_o my_o heart_n but_o to_o make_v you_o all_o happy_a in_o the_o support_n of_o the_o law_n establish_v nay_o the_o speaker_n of_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o when_o he_o address_v himself_o to_o his_o sacred_a majesty_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o whole_a house_n who_o be_v the_o representative_a body_n of_o all_o the_o commons_o of_o england_n can_v say_v most_o gracious_a and_o dread_a sovereign_n good_n 23._o when_o any_o thing_n of_o right_n or_o but_o conveniency_n have_v happen_v to_o be_v a_o measure_v cast_v a_o disputable_a case_n he_o have_v always_o cast_v it_o against_o himself_o if_o it_o have_v be_v for_o his_o people_n good_n though_o the_o knight_n citizen_n and_o burgess_n 26._o saturday_n decemb_v 29._o 1660._o be_v the_o day_n of_o their_o dissolution_n p._n 25_o 26._o now_o assemble_v in_o parliament_n have_v no_o cause_n to_o complain_v they_o can_v but_o take_v notice_n of_o your_o partiality_n for_o when_o any_o thing_n in_o point_n of_o right_n or_o but_o conveniency_n have_v fall_v out_o to_o be_v as_o we_o use_v to_o say_v a_o measure_v cast_v a_o disputable_a case_n between_o yourself_o and_o your_o people_n without_o any_o regard_n or_o respect_n have_v unto_o your_o own_o right_n or_o the_o advantage_n that_o may_v accrue_v to_o yourself_o by_o assert_v the_o same_o if_o the_o good_a of_o your_o people_n have_v come_v in_o competition_n with_o it_o you_o have_v always_o cast_v it_o against_o yourself_o and_o give_v it_o in_o on_o your_o people_n side_n liberties_n 24._o the_o restoration_n of_o the_o king_n and_o the_o restore_a we_o to_o our_o magna_fw-la charta_fw-la liberties_n and_o then_o a_o little_a before_o he_o conclude_v this_o his_o speech_n he_o return_v his_o thankful_a acknowledgement_n to_o god_n for_o his_o infinite_a goodness_n and_o mercy_n in_o restore_v his_o majesty_n to_o his_o royal_a and_o imperial_a crown_n throne_n and_o dignity_n and_o for_o make_v he_o the_o restorer_n of_o our_o religion_n as_o likewise_o say_v he_o for_o restore_v we_o to_o our_o magna_fw-la charta_fw-la liberties_n have_v take_v 32._o the_o same_o speech_n pag._n 31_o 32._o the_o charge_n and_o care_n of_o they_o into_o your_o own_o heart_n which_o be_v our_o great_a security_n and_o more_o than_o a_o thousand_o security_n 25._o the_o good_a old_a rule_n of_o the_o law_n our_o best_a security_n confirmation_n the_o king_n say_v it_o himself_o and_o it_o be_v true_a beyond_o all_o contradiction_n that_o the_o good_a old_a rule_n of_o the_o law_n be_v the_o best_a security_n these_o shall_v be_v ever_o dear_a 4._o his_o speech_n may_n 19_o 1662._o pag._n 4._o invade_v 26._o no_o man_n property_n or_o liberty_n shall_v ever_o be_v invade_v to_o he_o these_o will_v he_o command_v his_o learned_a judge_n to_o cherish_v with_o upright_a and_o impartial_a justice_n and_o in_o his_o speech_n to_o both_o his_o house_n he_o end_v thus_o i_o will_v 4._o wednesday_n feb._n 5._o 1672._o pag._n 4._o conclude_v with_o this_o assurance_n to_o you_o that_o no_o law_n 27._o the_o king_n steady_a in_o maintain_v all_o his_o promise_n to_o we_o concern_v property_n and_o ready_a to_o give_v fresh_a instance_n of_o his_o zeal_n for_o preserve_v the_o establish_a law_n man_n property_n or_o liberty_n shall_v ever_o be_v invade_v what_o expression_n can_v go_v high_o and_o how_o can_v the_o king_n more_o expatiate_v himself_o to_o you_o be_v not_o this_o security_n a_o satisfaction_n equal_a to_o all_o your_o wish_n but_o to_o proceed_v be_v please_v to_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o the_o king_n again_o to_o his_o parliament_n say_v he_o i_o hope_v i_o need_v not_o use_v many_o word_n to_o persuade_v you_o that_o i_o 4._o the_o king_n speech_n monday_n october_n 27._o 1673._o pag_n 4._o be_o steady_a in_o maintain_v all_o the_o profession_n and_o promise_n i_o have_v make_v you_o concern_v property_n and_o i_o shall_v be_v very_o ready_a to_o give_v you_o it_o 28._o for_o his_o heart_n be_v perfect_o with_o his_o peoples_n in_o it_o fresh_a instance_n of_o my_o zeal_n for_o preserve_v the_o establish_v law_n as_o often_o as_o any_o occasion_n shall_v require_v and_o the_o lord_n chancellor_n tell_v we_o in_o his_o speech_n then_o i_o profit_n 29._o reverence_n and_o obedience_n will_v be_v give_v to_o law_n when_o they_o be_v well_o understand_v that_o they_o conduce_v to_o the_o people_n profit_n can_v add_v nothing_o to_o what_o his_o majesty_n have_v say_v for_o as_o to_o property_n his_o heart_n be_v with_o your_o heart_n 9_o pag._n 9_o perfect_o with_o your_o heart_n it_o be_v a_o right_a ground_n of_o confidence_n such_o a_o 15._o the_o lord_n chancellor_n speech_n monday_n may_v 19_o 1662._o pag._n 14._o &_o 15._o one_o as_o seldom_o deceive_v man_n that_o the_o great_a lawmaker_n the_o wise_a solon_n have_v when_o he_o conclude_v that_o reverence_n and_o obedience_n will_v be_v yield_v to_o his_o law_n because_o he_o have_v take_v the_o pain_n to_o make_v his_o citizen_n know_v and_o understand_v that_o it_o be_v more_o for_o their_o profit_n to_o obey_v law_n and_o justice_n than_o to_o contemn_v and_o break_v it_o and_o indeed_o the_o profit_n benefit_n and_o ease_n be_v very_o great_a which_o always_o attend_v a_o cheerful_a obedience_n to_o law_n and_o government_n no_o wonder_n than_o we_o stand_v up_o so_o vigorous_o for_o our_o old_a law_n since_o in_o maintain_v they_o consist_v our_o perfect_a freedom_n our_o great_a liberty_n and_o herein_o too_o be_v the_o king_n chief_o solicitous_a because_o it_o tend_v so_o much_o to_o our_o real_a good_a and_o happiness_n therefore_o say_v he_o to_o his_o parliament_n i_o shall_v consent_v to_o any_o reasonable_a bill_n you_o shall_v offer_v i_o for_o the_o good_a nation_n 30._o his_o willingness_n to_o consent_v to_o any_o reasonable_a bill_n for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o nation_n 6._o the_o king_n speech_n thursd_v may_v 23._o 1678._o pag._n 6._o and_o safety_n of_o the_o nation_n and_o he_o thus_o continue_v my_o lord_n and_o gentleman_n i_o shall_v say_v no_o more_o but_o only_o to_o assure_v you_o whatsoever_o some_o ill_a man_n will_v have_v believe_v i_o never_o have_v safety_n 31._o the_o king_n never_o have_v any_o intention_n but_o of_o good_a to_o his_o people_n and_o will_v do_v all_o thing_n for_o their_o safety_n any_o intention_n but_o of_o good_a to_o you_o and_o to_o my_o people_n nor_o ever_o shall_v but_o will_v do_v all_o that_o i_o can_v for_o your_o safety_n and_o ease_n and_o wherein_o do_v our_o safety_n and_o ease_n more_o consist_v than_o in_o a_o orderly_a government_n by_o law_n which_o preserve_v to_o every_o man_n his_o true_a right_n and_o interest_n and_o be_v there_o any_o invasion_n on_o we_o here_o be_v not_o the_o
their_o liberty_n and_o property_n by_o as_o many_o good_a law_n as_o can_v be_v propose_v and_o as_o may_v comport_v with_o the_o safety_n of_o the_o government_n kingdom_n and_o people_n say_v he_o i_o declare_v myself_o free_o that_o i_o be_o ready_a to_o gratify_v you_o in_o a_o further_o 3._o the_o king_n speech_n thursd_v feb._n 15._o 1676_o 7._o pag._n 2_o 3._o secure_v of_o your_o liberty_n and_o property_n if_o you_o can_v think_v you_o want_v it_o by_o as_o many_o good_a law_n as_o you_o shall_v propose_v and_o as_o can_v consist_v with_o the_o safety_n of_o the_o government_n without_o which_o there_o will_v neither_o be_v liberty_n nor_o property_n leave_v to_o any_o man_n have_v thus_o plain_o tell_v you_o what_o i_o be_o ready_a to_o do_v for_o you_o i_o shall_v deal_v as_o plain_o with_o you_o again_o and_o tell_v you_o what_o it_o be_v i_o do_v expect_v from_o you_o i_o do_v expect_v and_o require_v from_o you_o that_o all_o occasion_n expect_v 53._o the_o king_n be_v ready_a to_o do_v this_o for_o we_o expect_v of_o difference_n between_o the_o two_o house_n be_v careful_o avoid_v for_o else_o they_o who_o have_v no_o hope_n to_o prevent_v your_o good_a resolution_n will_v hope_v by_o this_o reserve_v to_o hinder_v they_o from_o take_v any_o effect_n away_o 54._o that_o all_o occasion_n of_o difference_n between_o the_o house_n be_v take_v away_o and_o let_v all_o man_n judge_v who_o be_v most_o for_o arbitrary_a government_n they_o that_o foment_n such_o difference_n as_o tend_v to_o dissolve_v all_o parliament_n or_o i_o that_o will_v preserve_v this_o and_o all_o parliament_n from_o be_v make_v useless_a difference_n 55._o and_o let_v any_o judge_n who_o be_v most_o for_o arbitrary_a government_n he_o or_o other_o that_o foment_n difference_n by_o such_o dissension_n the_o preserve_v a_o state_n of_o peace_n and_o unity_n 12._o the_o lord_n chancellor_n speech_n may_v 23._o 1678._o pag._n 12._o ever_o 56._o keep_v peace_n at_o home_o now_o more_o necessary_a than_o ever_o at_o home_n be_v now_o more_o necessary_a than_o ever_o he_o that_o foments_n division_n now_o do_v more_o mischief_n to_o his_o country_n than_o a_o foreign_a enemy_n can_v do_v and_o disarm_v it_o in_o a_o time_n when_o all_o the_o hand_n and_o all_o the_o heart_n we_o have_v be_v but_o enough_o to_o defend_v we_o no_o fear_n of_o arbitrary_a government_n can_v justify_v no_o zeal_n to_o religion_n can_v sanctify_v such_o a_o proceed_v for_o this_o direct_o tend_v to_o unhinge_v we_o all_o this_o have_v nothing_o but_o ruin_n and_o desolation_n anarchy_n and_o confusion_n in_o the_o end_n of_o it_o ruin_n 57_o division_n only_o tend_v to_o ruin_n this_o will_v the_o king_n suppress_v he_o will_v have_v right_o prevail_v and_o every_o man_n to_o enjoy_v all_o those_o civil_a privilege_n which_o belong_v to_o he_o as_o his_o just_a due_a for_o he_o will_v have_v thing_n to_o stand_v upon_o their_o ancient_n and_o sure_a foundation_n complaint_n shall_v be_v hear_v and_o wrong_n shall_v be_v relieve_v to_o all_o alike_o shall_v justice_n be_v impart_v and_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o respect_n to_o person_n and_o this_o will_v be_v the_o way_n for_o the_o land_n to_o have_v abundance_n of_o peace_n for_o the_o truth_n hereof_o harken_v to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o king_n i_o do_v not_o pretend_v to_o restoration_n 58._o the_o nation_n never_o have_v less_o cause_n to_o complain_v of_o grievance_n than_o since_o the_o king_n restoration_n be_v without_o infirmity_n but_o i_o have_v never_o break_v my_o word_n with_o you_o and_o if_o i_o do_v not_o flatter_v 4._o the_o king_n speech_n jan._n 18._o 1666_o pag._n 4._o myself_o the_o nation_n never_o have_v less_o cause_n to_o complain_v of_o grievance_n or_o the_o least_o injustice_n or_o oppression_n than_o it_o have_v have_v in_o these_o seven_o year_n it_o have_v please_v god_n to_o restore_v i_o to_o you_o and_o when_o he_o come_v to_o prorogue_v his_o parliament_n till_o towards_o winter_n that_o so_o they_o may_v in_o their_o several_a place_n intend_v the_o peace_n and_o security_n of_o their_o several_a country_n where_o there_o be_v unquiet_a spirit_n enough_o work_v i_o do_v pray_v you_o say_v he_o it_o 59_o and_o he_o desire_v his_o parliament_n so_o to_o tell_v the_o people_n in_o their_o respective_a country_n for_o he_o be_v sure_a of_o it_o and_o i_o do_v expect_v it_o from_o you_o that_o you_o will_v use_v your_o utmost_a endeavour_n to_o remove_v all_o 5._o the_o king_n speech_n feb._n 8._o 1666_o pag._n 5._o those_o false_a imagination_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o people_n which_o the_o malice_n of_o ill_a man_n have_v industrious_o infuse_v into_o they_o of_o i_o know_v not_o what_o jealousy_n and_o grievance_n for_o i_o must_v tell_v you_o again_o and_o i_o be_o sure_a i_o be_o in_o the_o right_n and_o it_o be_v worthy_a of_o the_o most_o solemn_a regard_n that_o the_o people_n have_v never_o so_o little_a cause_n to_o complain_v of_o oppression_n and_o grievance_n as_o they_o have_v have_v since_o my_o return_n to_o you_o this_o be_v not_o all_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n keeper_n who_o speak_v all_o 60._o but_o this_o be_v not_o all_o the_o sense_n and_o mind_n of_o the_o king_n and_o which_o he_o command_v he_o to_o declare_v to_o they_o be_v more_o large_a yet_o say_v he_o if_o any_o just_a grievance_n shall_v have_v happen_v his_o majesty_n will_v they_o 61._o if_o any_o just_a grievance_n shall_v happen_v he_o be_v as_o ready_a to_o redress_v they_o as_o the_o parliament_n to_o represent_v they_o be_v as_o willing_a and_o ready_a to_o redress_v they_o for_o the_o future_a 7._o the_o lord_n keeper_n speech_n thursd_v octob_n 10._o 1667._o pag._n 8._o id._n pag._n 7._o as_o you_o to_o have_v they_o represent_v unto_o he_o and_o therefore_o although_o his_o majesty_n hear_v and_o have_v reason_n to_o believe_v that_o some_o disaffect_v person_n have_v spread_v abroad_o discourse_n and_o rumour_n reflect_v upon_o the_o government_n intend_v thereby_o to_o beget_v a_o disaffection_n in_o his_o good_a subject_n and_o it_o be_v a_o easy_a thing_n to_o take_v exception_n cum_fw-la neque_fw-la culpam_fw-la humana_fw-la infirmitas_fw-la neque_fw-la calumniam_fw-la regnandi_fw-la difficultas_fw-la evitet_fw-la yet_o his_o majesty_n promise_v himself_o from_o your_o good_a affection_n that_o every_o one_o of_o you_o in_o your_o several_a place_n will_v endeavour_v to_o preserve_v a_o good_a understanding_n between_o he_o and_o his_o people_n 8._o id._n pag._n 7_o 8._o well_o but_o the_o king_n as_o if_o he_o have_v not_o be_v satisfy_v in_o trust_v any_o other_o to_o speak_v his_o mind_n come_v and_o tell_v his_o parliament_n himself_o i_o assure_v you_o i_o shall_v willing_o receive_v nature_n 62._o and_o he_o will_v willing_o receive_v all_o bill_n of_o that_o nature_n and_o pass_v any_o bill_n you_o shall_v offer_v i_o 4._o the_o king_n speech_n to_o both_o house_n saturd_a mar._n 8._o 167●_n 3._o pag._n 4._o that_o may_v tend_v to_o the_o give_v you_o satisfaction_n in_o all_o our_o just_a grievance_n what_o be_v there_o now_o that_o you_o can_v complain_v of_o complaint_n 63._o we_o shall_v be_v right_v in_o all_o our_o complaint_n wherein_o you_o shall_v not_o be_v right_v do_v there_o want_v any_o law_n to_o secure_v the_o peace_n and_o quiet_a of_o the_o state_n say_v my_o lord_n keeper_n to_o 11._o the_o lord_n keeper_n speech_n octob._n 13._o 1675._o pag._n 8_o 9_o 10_o 11._o that_o parliament_n state_n 64._o in_o law_n to_o secure_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o state_n will_v you_o at_o once_o enrich_v and_o adorn_v the_o kingdom_n by_o provide_v for_o the_o extent_n and_o improvement_n of_o trade_n by_o introduce_v new_a and_o useful_a manufacture_n and_o by_o encourage_v those_o we_o have_v already_o trade_n 65._o in_o provision_n for_o the_o extent_n and_o improvement_n of_o trade_n will_v you_o prevent_v all_o fraud_n and_o perjury_n all_o delay_n and_o abuse_n in_o the_o administration_n of_o justice_n will_v you_o preserve_v a_o famous_a city_n from_o be_v depopulate_v justice_n 66._o in_o prevent_v all_o fraud_n and_o perjury_n all_o delay_n and_o abuse_n in_o the_o administer_a of_o justice_n by_o the_o suburb_n will_v you_o restrain_v the_o excess_n of_o those_o new_a building_n which_o begin_v to_o swarm_v with_o inhabitant_n unknown_a all_o your_o petition_n of_o this_o kind_n will_v be_v grateful_a to_o the_o king_n and_o you_o may_v with_o ease_n effect_v all_o this_o and_o much_o more_o which_o your_o great_a wisdom_n will_v suggest_v to_o you_o a_o little_a time_n building_n 67._o in_o restrain_v the_o excess_n of_o new_a building_n will_v serve_v to_o make_v many_o excellent_a law_n and_o to_o give_v you_o the_o honour_n of_o be_v the_o repairer_n of_o all_o our_o breach_n so_o as_o that_o time_n he_o
whole_o employ_v upon_o the_o public_a and_o not_o take_v up_o by_o such_o consideration_n as_o be_v less_o meritorious_a public_a 68_o and_o a_o little_a time_n serve_v to_o make_v many_o excellent_a law_n if_o that_o time_n be_v whole_o employ_v on_o the_o public_a if_o therefore_o there_o be_v any_o without_o door_n that_o labour_n to_o disunite_v your_o counsel_n or_o to_o render_v they_o ineffectual_a if_o they_o can_v hope_v that_o the_o occasion_n for_o this_o may_v arise_v from_o some_o difference_n within_o yourselves_o or_o hope_v by_o those_o difference_n to_o disguise_v their_o own_o disaffection_n to_o your_o good_a proceed_n it_o be_v in_o your_o power_n to_o defeat_v those_o hope_n to_o pull_v off_o this_o disguise_n and_o to_o secure_v council_n 69._o therefore_o let_v none_o be_v able_a to_o disunite_v our_o great_a council_n a_o happy_a conclusion_n of_o this_o meeting_n by_o study_v to_o preserve_v a_o good_a correspondence_n and_o by_o a_o careful_a avoid_n of_o all_o such_o question_n as_o be_v apt_a to_o engender_v strife_n and_o if_o ever_o there_o be_v a_o time_n when_o the_o gravity_n and_o the_o counsel_n the_o wisdom_n and_o the_o good_a temper_n of_o a_o parliament_n correspondence_n parliament_n parliament_n for_o it_o be_v in_o their_o power_n to_o preserve_v a_o good_a correspondence_n now_o correspondence_n correspondence_n if_o ever_o a_o parliament_n have_v need_v to_o be_v grave_a and_o temperate_a it_o be_v now_o be_v necessary_a to_o support_v that_o government_n which_o only_o can_v support_v these_o assembly_n certain_o this_o be_v the_o hour_n you_o see_v with_o what_o zeal_n the_o king_n have_v recommend_v to_o they_o 72._o the_o king_n zeal_n to_o recommend_v a_o good_a agreement_n among_o they_o you_o a_o good_a agreement_n between_o yourselves_o and_o that_o he_o do_v it_o with_o all_o the_o care_n and_o compassion_n all_o the_o earnestness_n and_o importunity_n fit_a for_o so_o great_a a_o prince_n to_o express_v who_o will_v be_v very_o sorry_a that_o any_o such_o misfortune_n as_o your_o disagreement_n shall_v either_o deprive_v he_o of_o your_o advice_n and_o assistance_n or_o law_n 73._o for_o the_o contrary_n will_v deprive_v he_o of_o their_o good_a advice_n and_o assistance_n and_o the_o people_n of_o good_a law_n his_o people_n of_o those_o good_a law_n which_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o grant_v you_o there_o be_v no_o other_o way_n our_o enemy_n can_v think_v of_o by_o which_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o this_o session_n to_o miscarry_v for_o fear_n and_o jealousy_n can_v enter_v here_o calumny_n and_o slander_n will_v find_v no_o place_n among_o wise_a and_o good_a men._n they_o that_o use_v these_o art_n abroad_o will_v quick_o be_v discredit_v when_o the_o world_n shall_v see_v the_o generous_a effect_n of_o your_o confidence_n miscarry_v 74._o this_o the_o only_a way_n our_o enemy_n can_v think_v of_o to_o make_v we_o miscarry_v man_n will_v despair_v of_o attempt_v any_o disturbance_n in_o the_o state_n when_o they_o see_v every_o step_n that_o tend_v that_o way_n serve_v only_o to_o give_v you_o fresh_a occasion_n to_o testify_v your_o loyalty_n and_o your_o zeal_n unite_v 75._o but_o man_n will_v despair_v of_o attempt_v any_o disturbance_n in_o the_o state_n when_o they_o see_v the_o parliament_n unite_v you_o have_v all_o the_o reason_n in_o the_o world_n to_o make_v man_n see_v this_o for_o you_o have_v the_o same_o monarchy_n to_o assert_v the_o same_o church_n to_o defend_v the_o same_o interest_n of_o nobility_n and_o gentry_n to_o maintain_v the_o same_o excellent_a king_n to_o contend_v for_o and_o the_o same_o enemy_n to_o contend_v against_o and_o now_o you_o shall_v hear_v what_o my_o lord_n chancellor_n have_v to_o say_v to_o the_o parliament_n concern_v this_o point_n he_o tell_v they_o there_o so_o 76._o and_o they_o have_v all_o the_o reason_n in_o the_o world_n to_o be_v so_o be_v little_a cause_n to_o be_v jealous_a of_o our_o liberty_n and_o property_n nor_o do_v they_o believe_v themselves_o who_o pretend_v 15._o the_o lord_n chancellor_n speech_n thursd_v may_n 23._o 1678._o pag._n 14_o 15._o to_o be_v afraid_a of_o either_o can_v there_o be_v a_o great_a evidence_n of_o the_o moderation_n of_o a_o prince_n and_o his_o property_n 77._o little_a cause_n to_o be_v jealous_a of_o our_o liberty_n and_o property_n tenderness_n of_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o subject_a than_o to_o suffer_v as_o he_o do_v every_o day_n so_o much_o licentious_a and_o malicious_a talk_n to_o pass_v unpunished_a if_o there_o be_v not_o any_o one_o instance_n to_o be_v unpunished_a 78._o for_o who_o else_o will_v suffer_v such_o malicious_a talker_n to_o go_v unpunished_a find_v in_o a_o whole_a reign_n of_o a_o man_n that_o have_v suffer_v against_o law_n and_o but_o very_o few_o example_n of_o those_o that_o have_v suffer_v by_o it_o shall_v we_o endure_v they_o that_o dare_v say_v in_o coffeehouse_n and_o in_o other_o public_a place_n that_o the_o nation_n be_v enslave_v let_v it_o be_v lawful_a to_o provoke_v and_o challenge_v the_o most_o discontent_a and_o the_o most_o unsatisfy_a spirit_n in_o the_o kingdom_n to_o show_v now_o 79._o one_o may_v challenge_v the_o most_o discontent_a spirit_n in_o the_o kingdom_n to_o show_v when_o there_o be_v less_o grievance_n or_o less_o cause_n of_o complaint_n than_o now_o that_o time_n if_o he_o can_v since_o the_o world_n begin_v and_o this_o nation_n be_v first_o inhabit_v wherein_o there_o be_v few_o grievance_n or_o less_o cause_n of_o complaint_n than_o there_o be_v at_o this_o present_a nay_o give_v he_o scope_n enough_o and_o let_v he_o search_v all_o age_n and_o all_o place_n of_o the_o world_n and_o tell_v we_o if_o he_o can_v when_o and_o where_o there_o be_v ever_o find_v a_o happy_a people_n than_o we_o be_v at_o this_o day_n and_o if_o malice_n itself_o ought_v to_o blush_v when_o it_o make_v this_o comparison_n what_o strange_a ingratitude_n both_o to_o god_n and_o man_n be_v they_o guilty_a of_o who_o behave_v themselves_o so_o as_o if_o they_o can_v be_v can_v can_v nay_o search_v all_o age_n and_o place_n of_o the_o world_n and_o none_o more_o happy_a than_o we_o be_v government_n be_v be_v therefore_o how_o ungrateful_a both_o to_o god_n and_o man_n be_v they_o who_o be_v ill_a at_o ease_n under_o so_o temperate_a a_o government_n be_v ill_a at_o ease_n under_o so_o temperate_a a_o government_n and_o the_o king_n as_o if_o all_o he_o have_v hitherto_o speak_v do_v not_o seem_v enough_o to_o he_o for_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o his_o people_n make_v one_o apvance_v kingdom_n 82._o the_o king_n declare_v he_o will_v with_o his_o life_n defend_v the_o law_n of_o this_o kingdom_n high_o yet_o and_o say_v to_o his_o parliament_n i_o do_v give_v you_o this_o assurance_n that_o i_o will_v with_o my_o life_n defend_v the_o law_n of_o this_o kingdom_n and_o may_v 7._o the_o king_n speech_n thursd_v march_n 6._o 1678_o 9_o pag._n 7._o he_o not_o then_o let_v we_o in_o cool_a blood_n consider_v just_o go_v on_o thus_o to_o they_o i_o do_v expect_v from_o you_o to_o be_v defend_v from_o the_o calumny_n as_o well_o as_o danger_n of_o those_o people_n 83._o therefore_o let_v we_o defend_v he_o from_o the_o calumny_n of_o those_o who_o will_v render_v he_o and_o the_o government_n odious_a to_o the_o people_n worst_a of_o man_n who_o endeavour_n to_o render_v i_o and_o my_o government_n odious_a to_o my_o people_n that_o there_o be_v such_o and_o especial_o at_o this_o time_n it_o be_v too_o notorious_a and_o if_o due_a care_n and_o circumspection_n be_v not_o take_v they_o will_v quick_o be_v in_o no_o small_a hope_n to_o raise_v a_o storm_n that_o nothing_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o allay_v such_o be_v they_o who_o be_v industrious_o active_a in_o improve_n fear_n and_o jealousy_n among_o the_o populace_n and_o in_o nourish_v all_o such_o 84._o it_o be_v too_o notorious_a that_o there_o be_v such_o the_o base_a suspicion_n which_o they_o can_v devise_v these_o shall_v diligent_o be_v look_v after_o who_o with_o their_o ill_n mean_v distinction_n between_o the_o court_n and_o the_o jealousy_n 85._o and_o they_o be_v those_o that_o improve_v fear_n and_o jealousy_n country_n between_o the_o natural_a and_o the_o politic_a capacity_n 16._o the_o lord_n chancellor_n speech_n feb._n 15._o 1676_o 7._o pag._n 15_o 16._o go_v about_o to_o persuade_v other_o that_o these_o be_v two_o several_a interest_n capacity_n 86._o they_o have_v ill_o mean_v distinction_n between_o the_o court_n and_o the_o country_n between_o the_o natural_a and_o the_o politic_a capacity_n but_o say_v the_o lord_n chancellor_n immediate_o after_o let_v such_o man_n have_v a_o care_n of_o that_o precipice_n to_o which_o such_o principle_n may_v lead_v they_o for_o the_o first_o man_n that_o ever_o begin_v to_o distinguish_v of_o their_o duty_n never_o leave_v off_o
till_o they_o have_v quite_o distinguish_v themselves_o out_o of_o all_o their_o allegiance_n and_o i_o wish_v with_o all_o my_o heart_n that_o that_o know_a truth_n of_o my_o lord_n keeper_n be_v imprint_v into_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o his_o majesty_n subject_n and_o which_o i_o be_o sure_a will_v keep_v we_o then_o within_o the_o precipice_n 87._o but_o let_v such_o have_v a_o care_n of_o a_o precipice_n decent_a bound_n of_o our_o loyalty_n and_o obedience_n to_o he_o that_o there_o be_v no_o distinct_a interest_n between_o the_o king_n and_o his_o people_n but_o the_o good_a of_o one_o be_v the_o good_a people_n 88_o there_o be_v no_o distinct_a interest_n between_o the_o king_n and_o his_o people_n 8._o the_o lord_n keeper_n speech_n octob._n 10._o 1667._o pag._n 8._o of_o both_o and_o for_o the_o public_a good_a the_o king_n will_v give_v no_o intermission_n to_o his_o own_o thought_n away_o 18._o the_o lord_n chancellor_n speech_n sept._n 13._o 1660._o pag._n 18._o then_o with_o all_o the_o vain_a imagination_n of_o those_o who_o labour_n intermission_n 89._o for_o the_o public_a good_a the_o king_n will_v give_v his_o thought_n no_o intermission_n to_o infuse_v a_o misbelief_n of_o the_o government_n we_o that_o have_v the_o happiness_n to_o live_v under_o so_o excellent_a 15._o the_o lord_n chancellor_n speech_n feb._n 15._o 1676_o 7._o pag._n 15._o a_o monarchy_n so_o admirable_a a_o constitution_n and_o temper_n of_o government_n we_o that_o remember_v what_o the_o want_n of_o this_o government_n cost_v we_o and_o the_o miserable_a desolation_n which_o attend_v it_o have_v all_o it_o 90._o we_o that_o have_v the_o happiness_n to_o live_v under_o so_o temperate_a a_o government_n have_v all_o the_o motive_n that_o can_v be_v to_o secure_v the_o interest_n of_o it_o 14._o id._n pag._n 14._o the_o motive_n and_o be_v under_o all_o the_o obligation_n that_o can_v be_v to_o secure_v and_o advance_v the_o interest_n of_o it_o the_o king_n on_o his_o part_n as_o the_o lord_n chancellor_n they_o 91._o the_o king_n meet_v his_o parliament_n with_o a_o open_a and_o full_a heart_n and_o be_v resolve_v to_o glad_a the_o heart_n of_o his_o people_n by_o all_o thing_n he_o be_v able_a to_o do_v for_o they_o admirable_o well_o speak_v to_o both_o house_n of_o parliament_n ibid._n id._n ibid._n meet_v you_o with_o so_o open_a and_o so_o full_a a_o heart_n and_o be_v so_o absolute_o resolve_v and_o determine_v to_o do_v all_o that_o in_o he_o lie_v to_o glad_a the_o heart_n of_o his_o people_n that_o it_o must_v be_v the_o strange_a infelicity_n in_o the_o world_n if_o either_o he_o or_o his_o subject_n shall_v meet_v with_o any_o disappointment_n here_o for_o the_o king_n have_v no_o desire_n but_o what_o be_v public_a no_o end_n or_o aim_n which_o terminate_v in_o himself_o 15._o id._n pag._n 15._o all_o his_o endeavour_n be_v so_o entire_o bend_v upon_o the_o welfare_n of_o all_o people_n 92._o the_o king_n have_v no_o desire_n but_o what_o be_v public_a all_o his_o endeavour_n be_v for_o the_o welfare_n of_o his_o people_n his_o dominion_n that_o he_o do_v not_o think_v any_o man_n a_o good_a subject_n who_o do_v not_o hearty_o love_v his_o country_n and_o therefore_o let_v no_o man_n pass_v for_o a_o good_a patriot_n who_o do_v not_o as_o hearty_o love_v and_o serve_v his_o prince_n private_a man_n indeed_o be_v subject_a to_o be_v mislead_v by_o private_a interest_n and_o may_v entertain_v some_o vain_a ibid._n ibid._n and_o slender_a hope_n of_o survive_v the_o misfortune_n of_o the_o public_a country_n 93._o and_o he_o think_v none_o good_a subject_n who_o do_v not_o hearty_o love_v their_o country_n but_o a_o prince_n be_v sure_a to_o fall_v with_o it_o and_o therefore_o can_v never_o have_v any_o interest_n divide_v from_o it_o to_o live_v and_o die_v with_o the_o king_n be_v the_o high_a profession_n a_o subject_a can_v make_v and_o sometime_o it_o be_v ibid._n ibid._n a_o profession_n only_o and_o no_o more_o but_o in_o a_o king_n it_o be_v a_o absolute_a interest_n 94._o private_a man_n may_v be_v mislead_v by_o private_a interest_n necessity_n it_o be_v a_o fate_n inevitable_a that_o he_o must_v live_v and_o die_v with_o his_o people_n to_o be_v sure_a than_o the_o king_n will_v do_v any_o reasonable_a thing_n to_o cherish_v and_o maintain_v the_o right_n and_o interest_n of_o his_o people_n since_o by_o people_n 95._o but_o a_o prince_n be_v sure_a to_o fall_v with_o his_o people_n that_o mean_v he_o know_v he_o do_v the_o more_o firm_o establish_v himself_o in_o all_o their_o affection_n and_o that_o he_o have_v always_o account_v his_o best_a security_n he_o have_v say_v it_o himself_o in_o a_o letter_n to_o his_o parliament_n in_o scotland_n assemble_v october_n 19_o 1669._o pag._n 2._o that_o by_o the_o they_o 96._o for_o it_o be_v a_o absolute_a necessity_n in_o a_o king_n to_o live_v and_o die_v with_o they_o union_n of_o the_o heart_n and_o hand_n of_o our_o people_n our_o throne_n shall_v be_v strengthen_v and_o they_o have_v peace_n and_o love_n settle_v among_o they_o for_o ever_o and_o in_o his_o declaration_n to_o all_o his_o love_a subject_n two_o year_n after_o his_o happy_a restoration_n to_o we_o say_v he_o we_o be_v very_o sure_o strengthen_v 97._o by_o the_o union_n of_o the_o people_n heart_n and_o hand_n the_o throne_n be_v strengthen_v that_o what_o guard_n soever_o may_v be_v find_v necessary_a for_o we_o to_o continue_v as_o in_o former_a time_n 7._o decemb._n 26._o 1662._o pag._n 6_o 7._o for_o the_o dignity_n and_o honour_n of_o our_o crown_n the_o sole_a strength_n and_o security_n we_o shall_v ever_o conside_fw-la in_fw-la shall_v be_v the_o heart_n and_o affection_n of_o our_o subject_n law_n 98._o therefore_o the_o sole_a strength_n and_o security_n the_o king_n shall_v confide_v in_o shall_v be_v the_o heart_n of_o his_o subject_n endear_v and_o confirm_v to_o he_o by_o the_o steady_a government_n according_a to_o law_n endear_v and_o confirm_v to_o we_o by_o our_o gracious_a and_o steady_a manner_n of_o government_n according_a to_o the_o ancient_a know_a law_n of_o the_o land_n there_o be_v not_o any_o one_o of_o our_o subject_n who_o do_v more_o from_o his_o heart_n abhor_v than_o we_o ourselves_o all_o sort_n of_o military_a and_o arbitrary_a rule_n here_o you_o see_v be_v liberty_n and_o property_n assure_v to_o you_o upon_o king_n 99_o here_o be_v liberty_n and_o property_n assure_v to_o we_o upon_o the_o word_n of_o a_o king_n the_o word_n of_o a_o king_n for_o no_o government_n be_v so_o dear_a to_o he_o as_o that_o which_o be_v uphold_v by_o the_o ancient_a law_n of_o his_o ancestor_n and_o as_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o world_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v hold_v so_o sacred_a and_o inviolable_a among_o king_n and_o sovereign_n as_o the_o true_a and_o exact_a observation_n of_o their_o word_n so_o this_o his_o majesty_n very_o well_o know_v and_o this_o it_o be_v that_o make_v he_o say_v i_o do_v value_n my_o word_n 100_o who_o value_v himself_o much_o on_o keep_v his_o word_n self_n much_o upon_o keep_v my_o word_n upon_o 1._o the_o king_n speech_n at_o the_o open_v of_o the_o parliament_n may_v 8._o 1661._o pag._n 1._o make_v good_a whatsoever_o i_o promise_v to_o my_o subject_n what_o reason_n then_o be_v there_o for_o so_o strange_a a_o distrust_n 101._o what_o reason_n then_o for_o any_o distrust_n diffidence_n and_o distrust_n which_o like_o a_o general_a infection_n begin_v to_o spread_v itself_o into_o almost_o all_o the_o 11._o the_o lord_n chancellor_n speech_n feb._n 15._o 1676_o 7._o pag._n 11._o corner_n of_o the_o land_n arbitrary_a rule_n and_o government_n you_o find_v the_o king_n can_v no_o more_o endure_v to_o think_v of_o than_o you_o yourselves_o he_o tell_v you_o it_o be_v that_o which_o his_o soul_n abhor_v perfect_o abhor_v justify_v 102._o what_o the_o king_n have_v thus_o free_o speak_v sure_o he_o will_v as_o full_o maintain_v and_o justify_v and_o therefore_o consequent_o it_o must_v be_v that_o which_o you_o be_v never_o likely_a to_o see_v he_o take_v up_o this_o methinks_v shall_v confirm_v our_o faith_n and_o make_v we_o confident_a that_o what_o the_o king_n have_v free_o speak_v he_o will_v as_o full_o maintain_v and_o justify_v let_v we_o then_o ready_o and_o unanimous_o give_v to_o the_o king_n our_o we_o 103._o let_v we_o then_o give_v the_o king_n our_o heart_n who_o be_v always_o open_v his_o arm_n to_o we_o heart_n who_o be_v continual_o open_v and_o stretch_v his_o arm_n to_o all_o who_o be_v worthy_a to_o be_v his_o subject_n 11._o the_o lord_n chancellor_n speech_n thurs_n sep._n 13._o 1660._o pag._n 11._o worthy_a to_o be_v think_v english_a men._n how_o will_v he_o extend_v his_o heart_n with_o a_o pious_a and_o a_o grateful_a joy_n
in_o their_o countenance_n at_o the_o dissolution_n as_o when_o they_o meet_v at_o the_o convention_n of_o parliament_n it_o be_v a_o unquestionable_a evidence_n that_o they_o be_v exceed_o satisfy_v in_o what_o they_o have_v do_v towards_o each_o other_o that_o they_o have_v very_o well_o do_v all_o the_o business_n they_o come_v about_o this_o be_v now_o your_o case_n you_o have_v so_o well_o satisfy_v your_o own_o conscience_n that_o you_o be_v sure_a you_o have_v satisfy_v the_o king_n expectation_n and_o his_o hope_n and_o the_o desire_n and_o wish_n of_o the_o country_n he_o 41._o they_o have_v ask_v nothing_o of_o the_o king_n but_o what_o he_o have_v ready_o grant_v and_o his_o majesty_n have_v scarce_o wish_v any_o thing_n which_o they_o have_v not_o do_v for_o he_o it_o be_v very_o just_o observe_v by_o you_o mr._n speaker_n that_o you_o have_v never_o ask_v any_o one_o thing_n of_o the_o king_n which_o he_o have_v not_o with_o all_o imaginable_a cheerfulness_n grant_v and_o in_o truth_n his_o majesty_n do_v with_o great_a comfort_n acknowledge_v that_o you_o have_v be_v so_o far_o from_o deny_v he_o any_o thing_n he_o have_v ask_v that_o he_o have_v scarce_o wish_v any_o thing_n that_o you_o have_v not_o grant_v the_o king_n and_o you_o have_v give_v such_o earnest_n to_o each_o other_o of_o your_o mutual_a affection_n you_o have_v be_v so_o exact_a and_o punctual_a in_o your_o proceed_n towards_o each_o other_o that_o you_o have_v make_v no_o promise_n no_o profession_n to_o each_o other_o of_o the_o make_v good_a and_o perform_v of_o which_o the_o world_n be_v not_o witness_v 7._o id._n p._n 7._o and_o i_o can_v here_o forbear_v insert_v the_o most_o admirable_a word_n of_o that_o chancellor_n to_o the_o noble_a lord_n and_o honourable_a member_n of_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o then_o in_o particular_a but_o yet_o which_o at_o all_o time_n may_v be_v repeat_v to_o and_o it_o be_v well_o if_o they_o be_v due_o remember_v by_o any_o succeed_a parliament_n they_o be_v these_o your_o lordship_n will_v easy_o recover_v that_o estimation_n and_o reverence_n himself_o 42._o by_o the_o lord_n exercise_n of_o that_o virtue_n from_o whence_o their_o honour_n spring_v they_o will_v inflame_v the_o people_n heart_n and_o from_o thence_o they_o will_v make_v a_o judgement_n of_o the_o king_n himself_o that_o be_v due_a to_o your_o high_a condition_n by_o the_o exercise_n and_o practice_n of_o that_o virtue_n from_o whence_o your_o honour_n first_o spring_v the_o example_n of_o your_o justice_n and_o piety_n will_v inflame_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o people_n towards_o you_o and_o from_o your_o practice_n they_o will_v make_v a_o judgement_n of_o the_o king_n himself_o they_o know_v very_o well_o that_o you_o be_v not_o only_o admit_v to_o his_o presence_n but_o to_o his_o conversation_n and_o even_o in_o a_o degree_n to_o his_o friendship_n for_o you_o be_v his_o great_a council_n by_o your_o example_n they_o will_v form_v their_o own_o manner_n and_o by_o you_o they_o will_v make_v some_o guess_n at_o the_o king_n therefore_o under_o that_o obligation_n you_o will_v cause_v your_o piety_n your_o justice_n your_o affability_n and_o your_o charity_n 17._o id._n p._n 15_o 16_o 17._o to_o shine_v as_o bright_a as_o be_v possible_a before_o they_o they_o be_v world_n 43._o they_o be_v too_o much_o in_o love_n with_o england_n who_o believe_v it_o the_o best_a country_n in_o the_o world_n but_o it_o be_v but_o just_a to_o say_v england_z i●_n a_o enclosure_n of_o the_o best_a people_n in_o the_o world_n too_o much_o in_o love_n with_o england_n too_o partial_a to_o it_o who_o believe_v it_o the_o best_a country_n in_o the_o world_n there_o be_v better_a earth_n and_o a_o better_a air_n and_o a_o better_a that_o be_v a_o warm_a sun_n in_o other_o country_n but_o we_o be_v no_o more_o than_o just_a when_o we_o say_v that_o england_n be_v a_o enclosure_n of_o the_o best_a people_n in_o the_o world_n when_o they_o be_v well_o inform_v and_o instruct_v a_o people_n in_o sobriety_n of_o conscience_n the_o most_o devote_a to_o god_n almighty_a in_o the_o integrity_n of_o their_o affection_n the_o most_o dutiful_a to_o the_o king_n in_o their_o good_a manner_n and_o inclination_n most_o regardful_a and_o love_a to_o the_o nobility_n no_o nobility_n in_o europe_n so_o entire_o love_v by_o the_o people_n there_o may_v people_n 44._o no_o nobility_n in_o europe_n so_o belove_v by_o the_o people_n be_v more_o awe_n fear_v and_o terror_n of_o they_o but_o no_o such_o love_n towards_o they_o as_o in_o england_n i_o beseech_v your_o lordship_n do_v not_o undervalue_v this_o love_n they_o have_v look_v upon_o your_o lordship_n and_o they_o will_v look_v upon_o your_o lordship_n again_o as_o the_o great_a example_n and_o pattern_n of_o duty_n to_o the_o king_n as_o their_o great_a security_n and_o protection_n from_o injury_n and_o injustice_n and_o for_o their_o enjoy_n whatever_o be_v due_a to_o they_o by_o the_o law_n and_o as_o the_o most_o proper_a mediator_n and_o interposer_n to_o the_o king_n if_o by_o any_o failure_n of_o justice_n they_o shall_v be_v expose_v to_o any_o oppression_n and_o violence_n and_o this_o exercise_n of_o your_o justice_n and_o kindness_n towards_o they_o will_v make_v they_o the_o more_o abhor_v and_o abominate_a that_o parity_n upon_o which_o a_o commonwealth_n must_v be_v found_v because_o it_o will_v extirpate_v or_o suppress_v or_o deprive_v they_o of_o their_o belove_a nobility_n which_o be_v such_o a_o support_n and_o security_n to_o their_o full_a happiness_n people_n 45._o as_o the_o commons_o come_v up_o the_o people_n deputy_n to_o the_o king_n so_o he_o return_v they_o his_o deputy_n to_o the_o people_n and_o you_o gentleman_n of_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o you_o be_v now_o return_v to_o your_o country_n lade_v with_o a_o trust_v not_o inferior_a or_o weighty_a than_o that_o you_o bring_v from_o thence_o you_o come_v up_o their_o deputy_n to_o the_o king_n and_o he_o return_v you_o now_o his_o deputy_n to_o they_o his_o plenipotentiaries_n to_o inform_v and_o assure_v they_o that_o he_o think_v himself_o the_o happy_a and_o the_o great_a prince_n of_o the_o world_n from_o be_v possess_v of_o the_o affection_n and_o heart_n of_o such_o subject_n and_o that_o you_o may_v have_v the_o more_o credit_n in_o what_o you_o say_v he_o will_v not_o take_v it_o unkind_o if_o you_o publish_v his_o defect_n and_o infirmity_n you_o may_v tell_v they_o as_o a_o great_a infirmity_n that_o a_o trouble_a charge_n 46._o a_o trouble_a countenance_n so_o afflict_v the_o king_n that_o he_o will_v remove_v it_o at_o his_o own_o charge_n and_o discontent_a countenance_n so_o afflict_v he_o that_o he_o will_v remove_v it_o from_o they_o at_o his_o own_o charge_n as_o if_o he_o himself_o be_v in_o the_o fault_n and_o when_o he_o have_v be_v inform_v of_o any_o less_o kind_a or_o jealous_a thing_n say_v among_o you_o as_o your_o window_n be_v never_o so_o close_o shut_v but_o that_o the_o sound_n of_o your_o word_n go_v to_o the_o several_a corner_n of_o the_o town_n his_o majesty_n have_v be_v hear_v to_o say_v no_o more_o but_o what_o have_v i_o do_v i_o wish_v that_o gentleman_n better_a 47._o the_o king_n wish_v his_o people_n know_v he_o better_a and_o i_o be_v acquaint_v that_o he_o know_v i_o better_o 18._o id._n p._n 18._o oh_o gentleman_n you_o can_v be_v yourselves_o nor_o you_o can_v make_v your_o friend_n too_o zealous_a or_o too_o jealous_a for_o such_o a_o prince_n safety_n or_o too_o solicitous_a for_o such_o a_o prince_n satisfaction_n and_o content_n to_o who_o we_o may_v very_o just_o say_v as_o the_o king_n of_o tyre_n write_v to_o solomon_n because_o that_o god_n have_v love_v his_o people_n he_o have_v make_v prosperity_n 48._o where_o the_o king_n defect_n be_v necessary_a towards_o the_o full_a measure_n of_o our_o prosperity_n thou_o king_n over_o they_o even_o his_o defect_n and_o infirmity_n be_v very_o necessary_a towards_o the_o full_a measure_n of_o our_o prosperity_n and_o though_o the_o speaker_n can_v that_o day_n affirm_v in_o the_o speech_n he_o make_v to_o his_o majesty_n that_o no_o man_n can_v say_v that_o have_v make_v the_o another_o 49._o as_o that_o parliament_n be_v very_o good_a so_o whilst_o we_o have_v this_o good_a king_n we_o may_v see_v such_o another_o most_o curious_a search_n into_o book_n or_o record_n that_o there_o ever_o be_v such_o a_o parliament_n as_o this_o yet_o he_o can_v add_v further_o what_o since_o have_v be_v sufficient_o know_v and_o it_o be_v our_o unspeakable_a joy_n and_o comfort_n that_o no_o man_n can_v say_v so_o long_o as_o your_o majesty_n live_v but_o we_o may_v have_v such_o another_o and_o he_o give_v we_o a_o very_a good_a 32._o id._n p._n 32._o good_a
then_o we_o must_v consider_v again_o that_o our_o peace_n abroad_o will_v home_n 76._o peace_n at_o home_n not_o subsist_v any_o long_o than_o while_o we_o do_v maintain_v our_o peace_n at_o home_n for_o without_o this_o no_o kingdom_n can_v be_v able_a to_o act_v in_o its_o full_a strength_n and_o without_o that_o the_o friendship_n or_o 8._o id._n p._n 8._o enmity_n of_o any_o nation_n cease_v to_o be_v considerable_a to_o its_o neighbour_n now_o it_o be_v a_o great_a and_o a_o dangerous_a mistake_n in_o those_o who_o think_v draw_v 77._o they_o be_v deceive_v who_o think_v it_o be_v peace_n at_o home_n because_o the_o sword_n be_v not_o draw_v the_o peace_n at_o home_n be_v well_o enough_o preserve_v so_o long_o as_o the_o sword_n be_v not_o draw_v whereas_o in_o truth_n nothing_o deserve_v ibid._n id._n ibid._n the_o name_n of_o peace_n but_o unity_n such_o a_o unity_n as_o flow_v from_o a_o unshaken_a trust_n and_o confidence_n between_o the_o king_n and_o unity_n 78._o nothing_o deserve_v the_o name_n of_o peace_n but_o unity_n his_o people_n from_o a_o due_a reverence_n and_o obedience_n to_o his_o law_n and_o to_o his_o government_n from_o a_o religious_a and_o a_o awful_a care_n not_o to_o remove_v the_o ancient_a landmark_n not_o to_o disturb_v those_o constitution_n which_o time_n and_o public_a convenience_n have_v settle_v from_o a_o be_v 79._o what_o unity_n that_o be_v to_o be_v zeal_n to_o preserve_v the_o whole_a frame_n and_o order_n of_o the_o government_n upon_o the_o old_a foundation_n and_o from_o a_o perfect_a detestation_n and_o abhorrency_n of_o all_o such_o as_o be_v give_v to_o change_v whatsoever_o fall_v short_a of_o this_o fall_v short_a of_o peace_n too_o ibid._n id._n ibid._n when_o the_o parliament_n meet_v on_o the_o 21._o october_n 1678._o after_o several_a short_a prorogation_n say_v the_o chancellor_n to_o they_o how_o much_o reach_n 80._o how_o much_o the_o king_n rely_v upon_o account_n of_o and_o think_v himself_o safe_a in_o his_o parliament_n be_v evident_a in_o his_o not_o let_v they_o be_v out_o of_o his_o reach_n the_o king_n rely_v upon_o the_o advice_n and_o assistance_n of_o his_o parliament_n how_o necessary_a he_o account_v it_o to_o he_o and_o 6._o lord_n chanc._n speech_n 21_o oct._n 78._o p._n 6._o how_o safe_a he_o think_v himself_o in_o it_o be_v evident_a by_o this_o that_o he_o have_v not_o suffer_v you_o all_o this_o year_n to_o be_v out_o of_o his_o reach_n but_o have_v continue_v you_o from_o time_n to_o time_n by_o a_o succession_n of_o little_a and_o short_a prorogation_n a_o parliament_n be_v the_o great_a the_o wise_a and_o the_o powerful_a counsel_n nation_n 81._o a_o parliament_n the_o great_a wise_a and_o powerful_a counsel_n ●f_a th●_n nation_n of_o this_o nation_n from_o the_o wisdom_n of_o this_o counsel_n the_o king_n be_v sure_a he_o shall_v receive_v the_o best_a advice_n from_o 10._o lord_n chanc._n speech_n thurs_n 6_o march_v 78_o 9_o p._n 9_o 10._o the_o duty_n and_o loyalty_n of_o this_o assembly_n he_o can_v never_o want_v a_o cheerful_a assistance_n and_o the_o king_n resolve_v to_o meet_v you_o all_o with_o so_o much_o grace_n and_o goodness_n that_o he_o hope_v this_o parliament_n shall_v end_v in_o no_o disappointment_n of_o any_o but_o our_o enemy_n it_o may_v seem_v strange_a perhaps_o to_o some_o that_o his_o majesty_n who_o parliament_n 82._o the_o dissolution_n of_o the_o late_a long_a parliament_n have_v so_o long_o and_o large_a a_o experience_n of_o the_o duty_n of_o the_o last_o parliament_n shall_v now_o and_o in_o this_o present_a conjuncture_n think_v fit_a to_o call_v a_o new_a one_o but_o the_o king_n have_v so_o equal_a a_o confidence_n in_o the_o affection_n of_o all_o his_o good_a subject_n that_o he_o intend_v to_o be_v acquaint_v with_o they_o all_o and_o to_o have_v many_o and_o frequent_a consultation_n with_o they_o and_o hope_n by_o this_o mean_n to_o attain_v first_o a_o true_a and_o right_a understanding_n of_o his_o people_n and_o next_o to_o that_o to_o be_v right_o understand_v by_o they_o and_o as_o he_o do_v dissolve_v that_o parliament_n which_o as_o you_o may_v see_v have_v do_v both_o he_o and_o the_o nation_n so_o many_o good_a and_o profitable_a service_n so_o likewise_o for_o very_o great_a and_o weighty_a reason_n he_o see_v it_o good_a and_o necessary_a to_o dissolve_v his_o numerous_a privy-councel_n privy-councel_n 83._o dissolution_n of_o the_o privy-councel_n and_o to_o constitute_v such_o a_o one_o as_o may_v not_o only_o by_o its_o number_n be_v fit_a for_o the_o consultation_n and_o digestion_n of_o all_o business_n both_o domestic_a and_o foreign_a but_o also_o by_o the_o choice_n of_o they_o out_o of_o one_o 84._o and_o the_o constitute_v a_o new_a one_o the_o several_a part_n this_o state_n be_v compose_v of_o may_v be_v 3._o declaration_n which_o the_o chancellor_n read_v to_o the_o privy-councel_n be_v cause_v to_o meet_v extraordinary_o april_n 20._o 79._o pag._n 2_o 3._o the_o best_a inform_v in_o the_o true_a constitution_n of_o it_o and_o thereby_o the_o most_o able_a to_o counsel_n he_o in_o all_o parliament_n 85._o and_o by_o their_o constant_a advice_n the_o king_n to_o govern_v his_o kingdom_n together_o with_o the_o frequent_a use_n of_o his_o parliament_n the_o affair_n and_o interest_n of_o this_o crown_n and_o nation_n and_o by_o the_o constant_a advice_n of_o such_o a_o council_n his_o majesty_n be_v resolve_v hereafter_o to_o govern_v his_o kingdom_n together_o with_o the_o frequent_a use_n of_o his_o great_a council_n of_o parliament_n which_o he_o take_v to_o be_v the_o true_a ancient_a constitution_n of_o this_o state_n and_o government_n now_o for_o the_o great_a dignity_n of_o this_o council_n his_o majesty_n resolve_v thirty_o 86._o their_o number_n limit_v to_o that_o of_o thirty_o their_o number_n shall_v be_v limit_v to_o that_o of_o thirty_o and_o for_o their_o great_a authority_n there_o shall_v be_v fifteen_o of_o his_o chief_a officer_n who_o shall_v be_v 87._o who_o those_o thirty_o shall_v be_v be_v privy-counsellor_n by_o their_o place_n and_o for_o the_o other_o fifteen_o he_o will_v choose_v ten_o out_o of_o the_o several_a rank_n of_o the_o nobility_n and_o five_o commoner_n of_o the_o realm_n who_o know_a ability_n interest_n and_o esteem_v in_o the_o nation_n shall_v render_v they_o without_o all_o ibid._n id._n ibid._n suspicion_n of_o either_o mistake_n or_o betray_v the_o true_a interest_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o consequent_o of_o advise_v he_o ill_o at_o the_o open_n of_o that_o parliament_n 8_o the_o of_o may_n 1661._o his_o majesty_n then_o say_v without_o hear_v the_o advice_n of_o my_o importance_n 88_o without_o the_o advice_n of_o his_o privy-councel_n he_o will_v do_v nothing_o of_o public_a importance_n privy-councel_n as_o i_o never_o do_v so_o i_o never_o will_v resolve_v 6._o king_n sp._n pag._n 6._o any_o thing_n of_o public_a importance_n and_o how_o much_o he_o have_v make_v use_n of_o they_o i_o need_v not_o tell_v you_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v sufficient_o sensible_a and_o what_o great_a use_n he_o mean_v to_o make_v of_o this_o his_o new_a council_n you_o can_v but_o be_v abundant_o satisfy_v with_o his_o own_o word_n to_o his_o parliament_n which_o tell_v you_o i_o have_v make_v he_o 89._o and_o therefore_o have_v choose_v such_o as_o be_v worthy_a and_o able_a to_o advise_v he_o choice_n of_o such_o person_n as_o be_v worthy_a and_o able_a to_o advise_v i_o and_o be_o resolve_v in_o all_o my_o weighty_a and_o important_a 9_o king_n sp._n april_n 21._o 1679._o p._n 9_o affair_n next_o to_o the_o advice_n of_o my_o great_a council_n in_o parliament_n which_o i_o shall_v very_o often_o consult_v with_o to_o be_v parliament_n 90._o fresh_a promise_n of_o often_o consult_v with_o his_o parliament_n advise_v by_o this_o privy-councel_n it_o be_v the_o duty_n then_o of_o all_o parliament_n and_o counsel_n with_o unwearied_a labour_n to_o consult_v for_o the_o service_n of_o his_o majesty_n and_o the_o good_a duty_n 91._o the_o parliament_n and_o counsel_n duty_n of_o this_o nation_n as_o i_o before_o have_v hint_v how_o that_o parliament_n do_v so_o will_v in_o a_o little_a time_n our_o field_n grow_v white_a to_o harvest_n than_o let_v not_o needless_a fear_n and_o jealousy_n possess_v our_o mind_n and_o because_o immediate_o we_o be_v not_o as_o perhaps_o we_o will_v be_v let_v we_o not_o be_v rash_a in_o draw_v any_o ill_a consequence_n of_o conclude_v that_o we_o never_o shall_v be_v otherwise_o the_o design_n be_v mischievous_a enough_o no_o doubt_n that_o make_v some_o man_n a_o good_a while_n since_o talk_v of_o dissolution_n and_o that_o then_o parliament_n be_v even_o just_a expire_n when_o the_o king_n himself_o declare_v it_o be_v as_o distant_a from_o his_o thought_n as_o it_o will_v have_v be_v little_a to_o his_o
interest_n it_o shall_v be_v so_o but_o because_o the_o king_n do_v prorogue_v his_o parliament_n from_o july_n 1663._o to_o march_v 1663._o 4._o some_o ill-affectioned_a person_n to_o the_o peace_n and_o quiet_a of_o the_o state_n and_o government_n will_v fain_o have_v have_v their_o seditious_a whisper_n credit_v of_o their_o never_o see_v they_o to_o meet_v again_o but_o their_o malice_n can_v not_o be_v hide_v for_o at_o the_o state_v day_n the_o door_n be_v open_a and_o the_o house_n full_a say_v the_o king_n to_o they_o my_o lord_n and_o gentleman_n they_o 92_o whatever_o people_v surmise_n be_v of_o he_o the_o king_n will_v not_o have_v his_o parliament_n think_v any_o thing_n ill_a of_o he_o as_o to_o any_o disaffection_n for_o they_o you_o see_v god_n be_v thank_v you_o have_v meet_v together_o again_o at_o the_o time_n appoint_v and_o i_o do_v assure_v you_o i_o have_v be_v so_o far_o from_o ever_o intend_v it_o shall_v be_v otherwise_o that_o i_o do_v not_o know_v one_o person_n who_o ever_o wish_v it_o shall_v be_v otherwise_o think_v therefore_o i_o pray_v what_o good_a meaning_n those_o man_n can_v have_v who_o from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o prorogation_n to_o the_o day_n of_o your_o meeting_n have_v continual_o whisper_v and_o industrious_o infuse_v into_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o people_n that_o the_o parliament_n shall_v meet_v no_o more_o that_o it_o shall_v either_o be_v present_o dissolve_v or_o so_o continue_v by_o prorogation_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v keep_v without_o a_o parliament_n i_o pray_v watch_v these_o whisperer_n all_o you_o can_v as_o man_n he_o 93._o he_o will_v have_v his_o parliament_n to_o watch_v all_o those_o who_o make_v it_o their_o business_n to_o sow_v jealousy_n between_o they_o and_o he_o 4._o king_n speech_n to_o both_o house_n mond_n 21_o mar._n 63_o 4._o pag._n 3_o 4._o who_o use_v their_o utmost_a endeavour_n to_o sow_v jealousy_n between_o you_o and_o i_o and_o i_o do_v promise_v you_o they_o shall_v not_o prevail_v with_o i_o and_o i_o do_v promise_n myself_o they_o shall_v not_o prevail_v with_o you_o and_o the_o truth_n be_v we_o be_v both_o concern_v they_o shall_v not_o and_o we_o shall_v then_o with_o god_n blessing_n prevent_v all_o the_o mischief_n they_o intend_v nay_o so_o sensible_a be_v the_o king_n of_o this_o same_o evil_a spirit_n among_o some_o at_o his_o receive_n of_o the_o parliament_n petition_v concern_v romish_n parliament_n 94._o the_o king_n extreme_o angry_a at_o those_o who_o talk_v of_o his_o resolution_n to_o dissolve_v his_o parliament_n priest_n and_o jesuit_n a_o year_n before_o this_o that_o say_v he_o then_o in_o his_o speech_n to_o they_o i_o confess_v my_o lord_n and_o gentleman_n i_o have_v hear_v of_o one_o jealousy_n which_o i_o will_v never_o forgive_v the_o author_n of_o that_o i_o have_v a_o jealousy_n of_o your_o affection_n that_o i_o be_v offend_v with_o the_o parliament_n to_o that_o degree_n that_o i_o intend_v 6._o king_n speech_n 1_o apr._n 1663._o pag._n 5._o &_o 6._o to_o dissolve_v it_o they_o say_v man_n be_v natural_o most_o understanding_n 95._o which_o he_o say_v reflect_v much_o upon_o his_o understanding_n angry_a with_o those_o reproach_n which_o reflect_v upon_o their_o understanding_n which_o make_v they_o think_v weak_a man_n true_o i_o shall_v appear_v a_o very_a weak_a man_n if_o i_o shall_v have_v any_o such_o passion_n any_o such_o purpose_n no_o my_o lord_n and_o gentleman_n i_o will_v not_o proportionable_a 96._o for_o none_o so_o much_o oblige_v to_o parliament_n as_o he_o be_v and_o his_o love_n to_o they_o shall_v be_v proportionable_a part_v with_o you_o upon_o those_o term_n never_o king_n be_v so_o much_o behold_v to_o a_o parliament_n as_o i_o be_o to_o you_o and_o if_o my_o kindness_n to_o you_o and_o my_o confidence_n in_o you_o be_v not_o proportionable_a i_o be_o behindhand_o with_o you_o which_o god_n willing_a i_o will_v not_o be_v and_o as_o he_o have_v lay_v out_o very_o great_a endeavour_n that_o there_o may_v not_o be_v any_o misunderstanding_n between_o he_o and_o his_o people_n so_o in_o a_o more_o peculiar_a manner_n have_v his_o majesty_n show_v himself_o industrious_a in_o his_o carefulness_n to_o preserve_v a_o right_a correspondence_n between_o he_o and_o his_o parliament_n and_o have_v be_v continual_o engage_v they_o by_o all_o the_o earnest_a expression_n of_o a_o affectionate_a and_o endear_n tenderness_n to_o preserve_v the_o same_o towards_o each_o other_o as_o you_o shall_v see_v from_o these_o follow_a instance_n i_o be_o sorry_a to_o find_v that_o the_o general_a temper_n and_o affection_n of_o compose_v 97._o the_o king_n sorry_a to_o find_v the_o nation_n no_o better_o compose_v the_o nation_n be_v not_o so_o well_o compose_v as_o i_o hope_v they_o will_v have_v be_v after_o so_o signal_n blessing_n from_o god_n almighty_a upon_o we_o all_o and_o after_o so_o great_a indulgence_n and_o condescension_n from_o i_o towards_o all_o interest_n there_o be_v peace_n 98._o many_o ill_a person_n labour_v night_n and_o day_n to_o disturb_v the_o public_a peace_n 5._o king_n speech_n 20_o nou._n 1661._o pag._n 4_o 5._o many_o wicked_a instrument_n still_o as_o active_a as_o ever_o who_o labour_n night_n and_o day_n to_o disturb_v the_o public_a peace_n and_o to_o make_v all_o people_n jealous_a of_o each_o other_o it_o will_v be_v worthy_a of_o your_o care_n and_o vigilance_n to_o provide_v proper_a remedy_n enough_o 99_o find_v out_o fit_a remedy_n for_o such_o and_o we_o shall_v do_v well_o enough_o for_o the_o disease_n of_o that_o kind_n and_o if_o you_o find_v new_a disease_n you_o must_v study_v new_a remedy_n let_v we_o not_o be_v discourage_v if_o we_o help_v one_o another_o we_o shall_v with_o god_n blessing_n master_n all_o our_o difficulty_n and_o a_o few_o line_n low_a say_v he_o i_o shall_v not_o need_v to_o recommend_v all_o 100_o a_o good_a correspondence_n necessary_a for_o we_o all_o or_o put_v you_o in_o mind_n of_o the_o good_a correspondence_n that_o ought_v to_o be_v keep_v between_o you_o for_o the_o good_a of_o yourselves_o and_o i_o and_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n and_o i_o may_v tell_v you_o it_o be_v very_o necessary_a for_o we_o all_o you_o will_v find_v whoever_o do_v not_o love_v i_o do_v not_o love_v you_o and_o they_o who_o have_v no_o reverence_n for_o you_o have_v little_a king_n 101._o who_o have_v no_o reverence_n for_o parliament_n have_v no_o kindness_n for_o the_o king_n kindness_n for_o i_o therefore_o i_o pray_v let_v we_o adhere_v fast_o to_o each_o other_o and_o then_o we_o shall_v with_o the_o help_n of_o god_n in_o a_o short_a time_n persuade_v o_o oblige_v all_o man_n to_o that_o submission_n and_o obedience_n to_o the_o law_n as_o may_v constitute_v a_o full_a measure_n of_o happiness_n to_o prince_n and_o people_n and_o persuade_v our_o neighbour_n to_o that_o esteem_n and_o value_n they_o have_v former_o have_v for_o we_o this_o harmony_n of_o temper_n be_v certain_o the_o best_a way_n in_o humane_a happy_a 102._o harmony_n of_o affection_n between_o the_o king_n and_o his_o parliament_n the_o best_a way_n to_o make_v both_o church_n and_o state_n happy_a foresight_n to_o bring_v down_o blessiing_n upon_o we_o all_o and_o to_o cause_v both_o the_o church_n and_o the_o statc_n to_o return_v to_o that_o unity_n 22._o lord_n chanc._n sp._n 13_o sept._n 1660._o p._n 22._o and_o unanimity_n which_o will_v make_v both_o king_n and_o people_n as_o happy_a as_o they_o can_v hope_v to_o be_v in_o this_o world_n 1660._o p._n 22._o this_o his_o majesty_n adopt_a parliament_n very_o well_o understand_v and_o therefore_o behave_v themselves_o according_o for_o their_o heart_n be_v set_v upon_o it_o after_o so_o long_a distraction_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a to_o restore_v the_o nation_n to_o its_o former_a felicity_n and_o this_o can_v not_o way_n be_v so_o well_o do_v as_o by_o the_o sweet_a agreement_n of_o their_o spirit_n and_o their_o mutual_a kindness_n and_o respect_n each_o to_o other_o this_o as_o they_o observe_v it_o do_v the_o king_n observe_v too_o and_o by_o his_o chancellor_n render_v they_o very_o kind_a acknowledgement_n for_o it_o say_v that_o noble_a lord_n in_o the_o same_o speech_n at_o the_o very_a beginning_n of_o the_o next_o page_n my_o lord_n and_o gentleman_n i_o shall_v conclude_v other_o 103._o and_o therefore_o the_o chancellor_n thank_v they_o as_o from_o the_o king_n for_o the_o good_a correspondence_n and_o respect_n to_o each_o other_o with_o the_o king_n be_v hearty_a thanks_o to_o you_o not_o only_o for_o what_o you_o have_v do_v towards_o he_o which_o have_v be_v very_a signal_n but_o for_o what_o you_o have_v do_v towards_o each_o other_o for_o the_o excellent_a correspondence_n you_o have_v maintain_v for_o the_o very_a seasonable_a deference_n and_o condescension_n you_o have_v
remedy_n be_v extreme_o to_o be_v wish_v other_o new_a remedy_n it_o be_v extreme_o to_o be_v wish_v that_o those_o remedy_n may_v be_v few_o and_o withal_o that_o they_o may_v be_v gentle_a and_o easy_a too_o ibid._n id._n ibid._n for_o they_o that_o be_v sick_a perish_v as_o often_o by_o too_o many_o remedy_n all_o 204._o the_o sick_a perish_v as_o oft_o by_o too_o many_o as_o by_o none_o at_o all_o as_o by_o none_o at_o all_o but_o none_o fall_v so_o fatal_o and_o final_o as_o they_o who_o be_v enter_v into_o some_o degree_n of_o convalescence_n resolve_v to_o recover_v in_o a_o instant_n and_o have_v rather_o make_v some_o great_a effort_n or_o try_v some_o bold_a experiment_n upon_o themselves_o than_o observe_v the_o method_n or_o attend_v those_o gradual_a progression_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o perfect_v that_o health_n and_o complete_a that_o recovery_n ibid._n id._n ibid._n doubtless_o the_o king_n will_v surpass_v himself_o at_o this_o time_n in_o affection_n 205._o doubtless_o the_o king_n will_v surpass_v himself_o in_o endeavour_v the_o kingdom_n good_a may_v you_o excel_v yourselves_o in_o enlarge_v affection_n endeavour_v to_o procure_v the_o good_a of_o the_o kingdom_n do_v but_o you_o excel_v yourselves_o too_o in_o the_o enlarge_a evidence_n of_o your_o affection_n and_o then_o the_o glory_n of_o revive_v this_o state_n will_v be_v entire_o due_a ●●_o your_o happy_a meeting_n as_o be_v attend_v with_o a_o unparalleled_a unanimity_n constancy_n and_o resolution_n beyond_o the_o precedent_n of_o former_a parliament_n 20._o id._n p._n 20._o than_o they_o who_o wait_v for_o the_o languish_a and_o the_o declination_n person_n 206._o it_o will_v strike_v terror_n and_o amazement_n in_o all_o ill_a person_n of_o the_o present_a government_n will_v be_v amaze_v to_o see_v so_o happy_a a_o crisis_n so_o blessed_v a_o revolution_n ibid._n ibid._n and_o age_n to_o come_v will_v find_v cause_n to_o celebrate_v your_o memory_n memory_n 207._o and_o future_a age_n will_v celebrate_v your_o memory_n as_o the_o true_a physician_n the_o wise_a counsellor_n the_o noble_a patriot_n and_o the_o best_a parliament_n that_o ever_o king_n or_o kingdom_n meet_v with_o ibid._n ibid._n so_o that_o it_o may_v perfect_v what_o the_o last_o begin_v for_o the_o safety_n of_o kingdom_n 208_o may_v it_o perfect_v what_o the_o last_o begin_v for_o the_o safety_n of_o the_o king_n and_o kingdom_n this_o king_n and_o kingdom_n that_o it_o may_v be_v ever_o famous_a for_o have_v establish_v upon_o a_o durable_a foundation_n our_o religion_n law_n and_o property_n that_o we_o may_v not_o be_v toss_v with_o boisterous_a wind_n nor_o overtake_v by_o a_o sudden_a dead_a calm_a but_o that_o a_o 10._o lord_n chanc._n sp._n 27_o oct._n 1673._o p._n 10._o gentle_a fair_a gale_n may_v carry_v you_o in_o a_o steady_a even_o and_o resolve_v way_n into_o the_o port_n of_o wisdom_n and_o security_n and_o since_o a_o whole_a session_n of_o parliament_n be_v in_o the_o judgement_n day_n 209._o the_o whole_a session_n of_o parliament_n be_v but_o as_o one_o day_n and_o construction_n of_o our_o law_n but_o as_o one_o day_n may_v you_o all_o endeavour_n that_o the_o morning_n of_o it_o the_o first_o entrance_n upon_o it_o may_v be_v with_o such_o fair_a and_o such_o auspicious_a circumstance_n 12._o lord_n keeper_n sp._n wcdnes_n 13_o oct._n 75._o p._n 11_o 12._o as_o may_v give_v the_o whole_a kingdom_n a_o assurance_n of_o a_o bright_a and_o a_o cheerful_a day_n let_v no_o ill_a humour_n gather_v into_o cloud_n to_o darken_v or_o obscure_v it_o 210_o may_v no_o ill_a humour_n gather_v into_o cloud_n to_o darken_v it_o it_o for_o this_o day_n be_v a_o critical_a day_n and_o more_o depend_v upon_o that_o judgement_n of_o our_o affair_n which_o will_v be_v make_v by_o it_o than_o can_v easy_o be_v imagine_v it_o import_v you_o therefore_o to_o take_v care_n that_o no_o part_n of_o this_o time_n lose_v 211._o may_v no_o part_n of_o this_o time_n be_v lose_v be_v lose_v let_v every_o precious_a minute_n of_o this_o day_n be_v spend_v in_o receive_v such_o act_n of_o grace_n and_o goodness_n as_o be_v ready_a to_o flow_v from_o the_o king_n and_o in_o make_v such_o retribution_n for_o they_o as_o may_v become_v the_o grateful_a heart_n of_o the_o best_a subject_n to_o the_o best_a of_o king_n so_o shall_v this_o day_n become_v a_o day_n of_o disappointment_n and_o discomfort_n generation_n 212._o so_o this_o will_v be_v a_o day_n of_o disappointment_n to_o our_o enemy_n and_o a_o joyful_a day_n to_o this_o and_o all_o future_a generation_n to_o our_o enemy_n but_o to_o we_o and_o all_o good_a man_n a_o glorious_a day_n a_o day_n of_o triumph_n and_o deliverance_n a_o memorable_a and_o a_o joyful_a day_n to_o this_o present_a and_o to_o all_o future_a generation_n and_o the_o god_n of_o peace_n and_o unity_n prosper_v all_o your_o 19_o lord_n chanc._n sp._n thursd_a 23_o may_n 78._o pag._n 19_o consultation_n to_o the_o honour_n and_o happiness_n of_o the_o consultation_n 213._o and_o the_o god_n of_o peace_n and_o unity_n prosper_v all_o your_o consultation_n king_n and_o the_o joy_n and_o comfort_n of_o all_o his_o good_a subject_n and_o let_v we_o all_o pray_v that_o he_o who_o have_v once_o more_o miraculous_o we_o 214._o and_o continue_v his_o divine_a protection_n over_o we_o deliver_v the_o king_n the_o church_n and_o the_o state_n will_v be_v please_v still_o to_o continue_v his_o divine_a protection_n and_o give_v we_o thankful_a and_o obedient_a heart_n and_o when_o we_o have_v offer_v up_o those_o heart_n to_o god_n let_v we_o in_o the_o next_o place_n offer_v they_o again_o to_o the_o king_n people_n 215._o and_o may_v you_o have_v the_o honour_n of_o make_v he_o the_o great_a king_n and_o he_o the_o glory_n of_o make_v we_o the_o happy_a people_n and_o lay_v they_o down_o at_o the_o footstool_n of_o his_o throne_n that_o so_o the_o king_n may_v see_v himself_o safe_a in_o your_o counsel_n rich_a in_o your_o affection_n victorious_a by_o your_o arm_n and_o raise_v to_o such_o a_o 19_o lord_n chanc._n sp._n thursd_a 6_o mar._n 7●_n 9_o p._n 18_o 19_o height_n by_o your_o loyalty_n and_o courage_n that_o you_o may_v have_v the_o honour_n of_o make_v he_o the_o great_a king_n and_o he_o the_o glory_n of_o make_v you_o the_o happy_a people_n neve_n major_a neve_fw-la minor_fw-la cura_fw-la &_o opera_fw-la suscipiatur_fw-la quàm_fw-la causa_fw-la postulet_fw-la tull._n offic._n lib._n 1._o finis_fw-la addenda_fw-la the_o title-page_n have_v it_o seem_v promise_v you_o the_o material_a substance_n of_o the_o several_a speech_n in_o parliament_n upon_o the_o aforesaid_a head_n inclusive_o till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o last_o viz._n in_o january_n 1680_o 1._o i_o find_v myself_o in_o duty_n bind_v to_o add_v these_o that_o follow_v by_o way_n of_o appendix_n to_o make_v good_a the_o promise_n because_o the_o title_n sheet_n be_v all_o wrought_v off_o before_o ever_o i_o have_v a_o view_n of_o it_o and_o so_o i_o hope_v my_o generous_a reader_n will_v accept_v of_o this_o as_o a_o reasonable_a excuse_n in_o my_o favour_n his_o majesty_n be_v very_o sensible_a how_o much_o our_o division_n at_o home_n will_v be_v likely_a to_o render_v our_o friendship_n less_o considerable_a abroad_o say_v to_o prevent_v these_o as_o much_o as_o may_v be_v i_o think_v fit_a to_o renew_v his_o majesty_n speech_n to_o his_o two_o house_n monday_n octob._n 21._o 1680._o p._n 4_o 5._o to_o you_o all_o the_o assurance_n which_o can_v be_v desire_v that_o nothing_o shall_v be_v want_v on_o my_o part_n to_o give_v you_o the_o full_a satisfaction_n your_o heart_n can_v wish_v for_o the_o security_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n which_o i_o be_o full_o resolve_v to_o maintain_v against_o all_o the_o conspiracy_n of_o our_o enemy_n and_o to_o concur_v with_o you_o in_o any_o new_a remedy_n which_o shall_v be_v propose_v that_o may_v consist_v with_o preserve_v the_o succession_n of_o the_o crown_n in_o its_o due_a and_o legal_a course_n of_o descent_n and_o in_o order_n to_o this_o i_o do_v recommend_v it_o to_o you_o to_o pursue_v the_o further_a examination_n of_o the_o plot_n with_o a_o strict_a and_o a_o impartial_a enquiry_n i_o do_v not_o think_v myself_o safe_a nor_o you_o neither_o till_o that_o matter_n he_o go_v through_o with_o and_o therefore_o it_o will_v be_v necessary_a that_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o tower_n be_v bring_v to_o their_o speedy_a trial_n that_o justice_n may_v be_v do_v in_o his_o next_o speech_n to_o his_o parliament_n the_o king_n be_v please_v to_o remember_v the_o same_o thing_n and_o say_v i_o do_v promise_v you_o the_o full_a satisfaction_n your_o heart_n can_v wish_v for_o the_o security_n of_o the_o king_n speech_n wednesday_n december_n 15._o 1680._o pag._n 4._o protestant_a religion_n and_o to_o concur_v
50._o for_o the_o king_n have_v set_v his_o royal_a heart_n to_o do_v his_o people_n good_a reason_n why_o we_o may_v expect_v it_o for_o say_v he_o you_o have_v set_v your_o royal_a heart_n upon_o it_o to_o do_v your_o people_n good_a what_o this_o next_o parliament_n be_v in_o the_o king_n thought_n you_o will_v quick_o find_v if_o you_o have_v but_o a_o due_a regard_n to_o his_o own_o word_n for_o say_v he_o to_o they_o at_o their_o open_n i_o think_v there_o be_v not_o many_o happiness_n 51._o and_o he_o be_v sure_a that_o there_o will_v be_v a_o mutual_a concurrence_n between_o he_o and_o they_o in_o all_o thing_n that_o may_v advance_v the_o nation_n happiness_n of_o you_o who_o be_v not_o particular_o know_v to_o i_o there_o be_v very_o few_o of_o who_o i_o have_v not_o hear_v so_o 2._o king_n speech_n to_o both_o house_n 8_o may_n 1661._o pag._n 2._o much_o good_a that_o i_o be_o as_o sure_a as_o i_o can_v be_v of_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o come_v that_o you_o will_v all_o concur_v with_o i_o and_o that_o i_o shall_v concur_v with_o you_o in_o all_o thing_n which_o may_v advance_v the_o peace_n plenty_n and_o prosperity_n of_o the_o nation_n i_o shall_v be_v exceed_o deceive_v else_o say_v my_o lord_n chancellor_n to_o this_o parliament_n the_o king_n have_v call_v you_o hither_o by_o his_o writ_n to_o assist_v he_o with_o your_o information_n and_o advice_n in_o the_o great_a and_o weighty_a affair_n of_o the_o kingdom_n by_o his_o writ_n which_o be_v the_o 7._o lord_n chanc._n speech_n to_o the_o same_o pag._n 7._o parliament_n 52._o the_o king_n be_v write_v be_v the_o only_a good_a and_o lawful_a way_n for_o the_o meeting_n of_o a_o parliament_n only_a good_a and_o lawful_a way_n to_o the_o meeting_n of_o a_o parliament_n and_o the_o pursue_v that_o writ_n the_o remember_v how_o and_o why_o they_o come_v together_o be_v the_o only_a way_n to_o bring_v a_o happy_a end_n to_o parliament_n what_o the_o work_n of_o this_o parliament_n be_v you_o shall_v hear_v he_o in_o the_o same_o speech_n tell_v they_o thus_o my_o lord_n and_o gentleman_n though_o the_o last_o parliament_n do_v great_a and_o wonderful_a thing_n do_v 53._o and_o a_o parliament_n have_v very_o great_a thing_n to_o do_v indeed_o as_o much_o as_o in_o that_o time_n they_o can_v yet_o they_o have_v leave_v very_o great_a thing_n for_o you_o to_o do_v you_o be_v to_o finish_v the_o structure_n of_o which_o they_o but_o lay_v the_o foundation_n indeed_o 12._o idem_fw-la pag._n 11._o &_o 12._o they_o leave_v some_o thing_n undo_v which_o it_o may_v be_v they_o think_v they_o have_v finish_v the_o inspection_n into_o which_o thing_n will_v become_v your_o wisdom_n you_o need_v not_o question_v but_o this_o their_o care_n to_o perform_v and_o perfect_v make_v his_o majesty_n thus_o say_v to_o his_o house_n of_o commons_o i_o do_v 1661._o 54._o never_o a_o more_o loyal_a parliament_n than_o that_o elect_v in_o 1661._o speak_v my_o heart_n to_o you_o when_o i_o tell_v you_o that_o i_o do_v believe_v that_o from_o the_o first_o institution_n of_o parliament_n to_o this_o hour_n there_o be_v never_o a_o house_n of_o commons_o full_a 4._o king_n speech_n to_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o mar._n 1._o 1661._o pag._n 4._o of_o affection_n and_o duty_n to_o their_o king_n than_o you_o be_v to_o i_o never_o any_o that_o be_v more_o desirous_a and_o solicitous_a to_o gratify_v the_o king_n than_o you_o be_v to_o oblige_v i_o never_o a_o house_n of_o commons_o in_o which_o there_o be_v few_o person_n without_o a_o full_a measure_n of_o zeal_n for_o the_o honour_n and_o welfare_n of_o the_o king_n and_o country_n than_o there_o be_v in_o this_o how_o glad_a be_v he_o to_o hear_v they_o have_v repeal_v that_o act_n which_o institution_n 55_o by_o repeal_n the_o act_n which_o exclude_v the_o bishop_n from_o sit_v in_o the_o house_n parliament_n be_v restore_v to_o their_o primitive_a institution_n exclude_v the_o bishop_n from_o sit_v in_o parliament_n because_o say_v he_o you_o have_v thereby_o restore_v parliament_n to_o their_o primitive_a institution_n this_o be_v a_o effect_n to_o be_v sure_a of_o his_o great_a kindness_n and_o affection_n to_o they_o and_o this_o doubtless_o make_v he_o go_v on_o as_o he_o do_v say_v i_o hope_v my_o lord_n and_o gentleman_n you_o will_v in_o a_o short_a have_v 96._o to_o restore_v parliament_n to_o their_o primitive_a order_n be_v to_o restore_v they_o to_o its_o primitive_a veneration_n with_o the_o people_n which_o the_o king_n wish_v they_o may_v always_o have_v time_n restore_v they_o to_o the_o primitive_a order_n and_o gravity_n of_o debate_n and_o determination_n which_o the_o licence_n of_o 3._o king_n speech_n 30_o july_n 1661._o pag._n 2_o 3._o the_o late_a distemper_a time_n have_v so_o much_o corrupt_v which_o be_v the_o only_a way_n to_o restore_v parliament_n to_o its_o primitive_a veneration_n with_o the_o people_n which_o i_o hearty_o wish_v they_o shall_v always_o have_v and_o how_o well_o they_o acquit_v themselves_o in_o all_o thing_n tend_v to_o the_o happiness_n of_o both_o king_n and_o kingdom_n sir_n edward_n turnor_n tell_v his_o majesty_n in_o these_o word_n since_o your_o majesty_n do_v convene_v the_o knight_n citizens_z and_o burgess_n of_o the_o commons_o house_n of_o parliament_n they_o have_v with_o unwearied_a 1._o speaker_n speech_n 30_o july_n 1661._o pag._n 1._o act_v 57_o and_o see_v how_o they_o act_v labour_n consult_v for_o the_o service_n of_o your_o majesty_n and_o the_o good_a of_o this_o nation_n very_a just_o then_o may_v the_o lord_n chancellor_n begin_v his_o speech_n as_o he_o do_v with_o refresh_v their_o memory_n with_o what_o the_o king_n first_o say_v to_o they_o it_o be_v now_o little_o more_o than_o a_o year_n that_o the_o king_n first_o call_v you_o to_o attend_v he_o here_o at_o the_o open_n of_o the_o parliament_n than_o you_o may_v remember_v he_o tell_v you_o that_o he_o think_v they_o 58._o the_o king_n be_v not_o deceive_v in_o his_o confidence_n of_o they_o there_o be_v not_o many_o of_o you_o who_o be_v not_o particular_o know_v to_o he_o that_o there_o be_v very_o few_o of_o who_o he_o have_v not_o hear_v so_o much_o good_a that_o he_o be_v he_o say_v as_o 8._o lord_n chanc._n speech_n 19_o may_v 1662._o p._n 7._o &_o 8._o sure_o as_o he_o can_v be_v of_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o come_v that_o you_o will_v all_o concur_v with_o he_o and_o that_o he_o shall_v concur_v with_o you_o in_o all_o thing_n which_o may_v advance_v the_o peace_n plenty_n and_o prosperity_n of_o the_o nation_n his_o majesty_n say_v he_o shall_v be_v exceed_o deceive_v else_o it_o be_v a_o princely_a declaration_n and_o a_o rare_a confidence_n which_o can_v flow_v from_o no_o other_o fountain_n but_o the_o sincerity_n and_o purity_n of_o his_o own_o conscience_n which_o admit_v no_o other_o design_n or_o thought_n into_o his_o royal_a breast_n but_o such_o as_o must_v tend_v to_o the_o unquestionable_a prosperity_n and_o greatness_n of_o his_o people_n can_v not_o but_o be_v assure_v of_o your_o full_a concurrence_n and_o co-operation_n with_o he_o it_o be_v a_o happy_a and_o a_o bless_a omen_n which_o at_o the_o instant_n difference_n 59_o this_o be_v a_o happy_a omen_n to_o defeat_v those_o that_o think_v to_o get_v advantage_n by_o their_o difference_n strike_v a_o terror_n into_o the_o heart_n of_o those_o who_o promise_v themselves_o some_o advantage_n from_o the_o difference_n and_o division_n in_o your_o counsel_n and_o hope_v from_o thence_o to_o create_v new_a trouble_n and_o molestation_n in_o the_o kingdom_n and_o god_n be_v thank_v the_o king_n have_v be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v exceed_o deceive_v that_o he_o do_v acknowledge_v he_o have_v be_v exceed_o comply_v with_o exceed_o gratify_v in_o all_o he_o have_v desire_v and_o he_o hope_v he_o have_v not_o in_o the_o least_o degree_n disappoint_v your_o expectation_n they_o have_v so_o exceed_o gratify_v he_o and_o he_o have_v such_o a_o extraordinary_a kindness_n and_o affection_n for_o they_o that_o though_o he_o have_v design_v to_o have_v prorogue_v they_o four_o day_n soon_o because_o of_o the_o arrival_n of_o the_o queen_n yet_o for_o the_o good_a of_o his_o people_n who_o perfect_v 60._o and_o he_o be_v so_o please_v with_o they_o that_o he_o stay_v four_o day_n long_o than_o he_o will_v have_v do_v because_o their_o bill_n shall_v be_v perfect_v be_v always_o dear_a to_o he_o he_o be_v please_v to_o condescend_v to_o tarry_v so_o long_o until_o they_o have_v full_o perfect_v the_o work_n they_o be_v about_o and_o prepare_v all_o their_o bill_n for_o the_o royal_a assent_n and_o there_o can_v be_v a_o more_o transcendent_a instance_n of_o the_o king_n love_n and_o passion_n for_o his_o
people_n as_o my_o lord_n chancellor_n well_o observe_v 21._o id._n p._n 21._o than_o that_o he_o have_v stay_v these_o four_o day_n to_o take_v his_o leave_n of_o you_o and_o that_o he_o may_v give_v you_o this_o day_n work_v all_o these_o good_a law_n have_v deny_v himself_o so_o long_o the_o enjoy_n the_o great_a comfort_n he_o be_v assure_v of_o in_o this_o world_n parliament_n 61._o that_o parliament_n satisfy_v in_o the_o king_n love_n to_o they_o and_o in_o his_o judgement_n that_o the_o happiness_n of_o the_o crown_n consist_v in_o the_o frequency_n of_o parliament_n the_o parliament_n be_v so_o very_o well_o satisfy_v with_o the_o king_n love_n to_o they_o that_o mr._n speaker_n can_v not_o forbear_v use_v these_o expression_n at_o their_o prorogation_n may_n 7._o 1664._o we_o be_v assure_v not_o only_o of_o your_o personal_a affection_n to_o parliament_n but_o of_o your_o judgement_n also_o that_o the_o happiness_n of_o the_o crown_n consist_v in_o the_o frequency_n of_o parliament_n his_o majesty_n be_v love_n to_o parliament_n be_v yet_o further_o evidence_v by_o his_o love_n to_o have_v good_a appearance_n when_o they_o meet_v he_o have_v as_o he_o say_v himself_o most_o confidence_n in_o full_a house_n house_n 62._o his_o love_n to_o parliament_n further_o show_v in_o his_o love_n to_o have_v full_a house_n where_o the_o well-being_n of_o the_o church_n and_o all_o other_o 3_o king_n speech_n mond_n feb._n 14._o 1669_o 70._o p._n 3_o interest_n of_o the_o crown_n and_o nation_n be_v best_a secure_v and_o the_o king_n can_v never_o doubt_v his_o parliament_n parliament_n 63._o the_o king_n can_v never_o doubt_v such_o a_o parliament_n a_o parliament_n who_o in_o their_o affection_n and_o loyalty_n to_o 15._o lord_n chanc._n speech_n feb._n 5._o 72_o 3._o p._n 10._o id._n p._n 14_o 15._o their_o prince_n have_v exceed_v all_o their_o predecessor_n a_o parliament_n with_o who_o the_o king_n have_v many_o year_n live_v with_o all_o the_o caress_n of_o a_o happy_a marriage_n have_v the_o king_n have_v a_o concern_v you_o have_v wed_v it_o have_v his_o majesty_n want_v supply_n you_o have_v ready_o cheerful_o and_o full_o provide_v for_o they_o you_o have_v rely_v upon_o the_o wisdom_n and_o conduct_v of_o his_o majesty_n in_o all_o his_o affair_n so_o that_o you_o have_v never_o bound_n 64._o who_o never_o exceed_v their_o bound_n attempt_v to_o exceed_v your_o bound_n or_o to_o impose_v upon_o he_o whilst_o the_o king_n on_o the_o other_o hand_n have_v make_v your_o counsel_n the_o foundation_n of_o all_o his_o proceed_n and_o have_v be_v so_o tender_a of_o you_o proceed_n 65._o their_o counsel_n the_o foundation_n of_o the_o king_n proceed_n that_o he_o have_v upon_o his_o own_o revenue_n and_o credit_n endeavour_v to_o support_v even_o forcign_a war_n that_o he_o may_v be_v least_o uneasy_a to_o you_o or_o burdensome_a to_o his_o people_n therefore_o the_o king_n may_v not_o only_o assure_v himself_o of_o your_o jealousy_n 66._o and_o he_o hope_v that_o his_o parliament_n will_v do_v what_o they_o can_v to_o beget_v a_o mutual_a confidence_n between_o he_o and_o his_o people_n which_o may_v extinguish_v all_o fear_n and_o jealousy_n affection_n to_o he_o but_o from_o such_o affection_n so_o know_v and_o so_o try_v as_o you_o he_o may_v expect_v that_o you_o 18._o lord_n keeper_n speech_n jan._n 7._o 1673_o 4._o p._n 18._o shall_v do_v your_o endeavour_n to_o restore_v and_o improve_v the_o mutual_a confidence_n between_o he_o and_o his_o people_n and_o that_o you_o shall_v do_v it_o to_o such_o a_o degree_n that_o it_o may_v recover_v its_o full_a strength_n and_o quite_o extinguish_v all_o their_o fear_n and_o jealousy_n for_o he_o do_v not_o only_o find_v himself_o safe_a but_o he_o they_o 67._o his_o safety_n and_o defence_n in_o they_o 21._o lord_n keeper_n speech_n 13_o ap._n 1675._o p._n 21._o think_v himself_o arm_v too_o whilst_o he_o be_v attend_v with_o such_o a_o nobility_n such_o a_o gentry_n as_o this_o and_o who_o can_v wonder_v then_o that_o the_o king_n resolve_v to_o enter_v good_a 68_o he_o will_v therefore_o whole_o rely_v upon_o his_o parliament_n and_o give_v they_o whatever_o yet_o can_v be_v want_v for_o their_o good_a into_o term_n of_o strict_a correspondence_n with_o his_o parliament_n to_o take_v your_o counsel_n in_o his_o most_o weighty_a affair_n to_o impart_v all_o his_o care_n to_o you_o to_o acquaint_v you_o with_o 5._o lord_n keeper_n speech_n wednesd_v 13_o oct._n 1675._o p._n 5._o all_o his_o want_n and_o necessity_n to_o offer_v you_o all_o that_o can_v yet_o be_v want_v to_o make_v you_o enjoy_v yourselves_o to_o establish_v a_o right_a understanding_n between_o himself_o and_o his_o three_o estate_n and_o between_o the_o estate_n themselves_o to_o redress_v all_o your_o just_a complaint_n and_o to_o put_v all_o his_o subject_n at_o ease_n as_o far_o as_o in_o he_o lie_v and_o can_v consist_v with_o the_o honour_n and_o safety_n of_o the_o government_n and_o have_v make_v all_o these_o advance_n towards_o you_o he_o doubt_v according_o 69._o and_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o they_o will_v behave_v themselves_o according_o not_o but_o you_o will_v behave_v yourselves_o like_o those_o that_o deserve_v to_o be_v call_v the_o king_n friend_n and_o that_o you_o 6._o id_fw-la pag._n 6._o will_v put_v he_o at_o ease_n too_o the_o king_n expect_v your_o advice_n and_o your_o assistance_n your_o assistance_n 70._o this_o make_v he_o to_o expect_v their_o advice_n and_o assistance_n advice_n in_o matter_n of_o the_o high_a deliberation_n your_o assistance_n in_o matter_n of_o extreme_a and_o press_a difficulty_n your_o deliberation_n will_v chief_o be_v exercise_v about_o those_o peace_n 71._o their_o deliberation_n will_v chief_o be_v exercise_v about_o the_o thing_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o kingdom_n peace_n thing_n which_o do_v belong_v unto_o your_o peace_n the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o state_n two_o consideration_n of_o so_o close_a a_o connexion_n between_o themselves_o that_o in_o the_o very_a original_n write_v of_o summons_n by_o virtue_n of_o which_o you_o 6._o chanc._n speech_n 15_o febr._n 76_o 7._o p._n 5_o 6._o sit_v here_o they_o be_v joint_o recommend_v to_o your_o counsel_n and_o your_o care_n as_o to_o the_o former_a the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n i_o have_v handle_v it_o at_o large_a in_o my_o chapter_n of_o religion_n and_o shall_v not_o trouble_v you_o now_o with_o any_o repetition_n only_o i_o will_v mind_v you_o of_o this_o one_o paragraph_n which_o ought_v never_o to_o be_v out_o of_o your_o consideration_n and_o it_o be_v that_o what_o remedy_n be_v fit_a for_o those_o that_o disturb_v its_o peace_n whether_o church_n 72._o all_o thing_n concern_v religious_a matter_n be_v entire_o leave_v to_o their_o consideration_n for_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n the_o poor_a mistake_a soul_n who_o deserve_v to_o be_v pity_v or_o the_o malicious_a and_o design_v man_n who_o deserve_v to_o be_v punish_v whether_o the_o fault_n be_v in_o the_o law_n or_o in_o the_o 7._o id._n p._n 6_o 7._o man_n in_o the_o man_n that_o shall_v obey_v or_o in_o the_o man_n that_o shall_v execute_v whether_o the_o cure_n be_v a_o work_n of_o time_n and_o patience_n or_o of_o zeal_n and_o diligence_n or_o whether_o any_o new_a expedient_a can_v be_v find_v to_o secure_v the_o ship_n from_o that_o storm_n which_o the_o swell_a of_o two_o contrary_a tide_n seem_v to_o threaten_v be_v whole_o leave_v to_o your_o advice_n the_o king_n have_v call_v you_o for_o that_o end_n and_o doubt_v not_o but_o your_o counsel_n will_v be_v such_o as_o shall_v tend_v to_o safety_n and_o to_o establishment_n the_o peace_n of_o the_o state_n require_v as_o much_o of_o your_o care_n and_o vigilance_n care_n 73._o and_o so_o likewise_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o state_n be_v leave_v to_o their_o care_n too_o our_o peace_n at_o home_n and_o our_o peace_n abroad_o as_o for_o that_o abroad_o we_o be_v at_o this_o time_n bless_a be_v god_n for_o abroad_o 74._o the_o peace_n abroad_o his_o mercy_n to_o we_o and_o bless_v be_v the_o king_n for_o his_o care_n of_o we_o in_o perfect_a peace_n with_o all_o the_o nation_n upon_o earth_n such_o a_o peace_n as_o make_v we_o the_o envy_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o have_v enable_v we_o to_o do_v ourselves_o right_a against_o the_o infidel_n such_o a_o peace_n peace_n 75._o it_o be_v now_o such_o a_o peace_n as_o bring_v with_o it_o all_o the_o fruit_n of_o peace_n as_o bring_v with_o it_o all_o the_o fruit_n of_o peace_n and_o deserve_v not_o ibid._n id._n ibid._n only_o our_o prayer_n for_o the_o continuance_n of_o it_o but_o our_o best_a and_o most_o watchful_a care_n that_o nothing_o may_v be_v do_v on_o our_o part_n to_o give_v it_o a_o interruption_n but_o